1
2
3
4
5
6
7
8
9
10
11
12
13
14
15
16
17
18
19
20
21
22
23
24
25
26
27
28
29
30
31
32
33
34
35
36
37
38
39
40
41
42
43
44
45
46
47
48
49
50
51
52
53
54
55
56
57
58
59
60
61
62
63
64
65
66
67
68
69
70
71
72
73
74
75
76
77
78
79
80
81
82
83
84
85
86
87
88
89
90
91
92
93
94
95
96
97
98
99
100
101
102
103
104
105
106
107
108
109
110
111
112
113
114
115
116
117
118
119
120
121
122
123
124
125
126
127
128
129
130
131
132
133
134
135
136
137
138
139
140
141
142
143
144
145
146
147
148
149
150
151
152
153
154
155
156
157
158
159
160
161
162
163
164
165
166
167
168
169
170
171
172
173
174
175
176
177
178
179
180
181
182
183
184
185
186
187
188
189
190
191
192
193
194
195
196
197
198
199
200
201
202
203
204
205
206
207
208
209
210
211
212
213
214
215
216
217
218
219
220
221
222
223
224
225
226
227
228
229
230
231
232
233
234
235
236
237
238
239
240
241
242
243
244
245
246
247
248
249
250
251
252
253
254
255
256
257
258
259
260
261
262
263
264
265
266
267
268
269
270
271
272
273
274
275
276
277
278
279
280
281
282
283
284
285
286
287
288
289
290
291
292
293
294
295
296
297
298
299
300
301
302
303
304
305
306
307
308
309
310
311
312
313
314
315
316
317
318
319
320
321
322
323
324
325
326
327
328
329
330
331
332
333
334
335
336
337
338
339
340
341
342
343
344
345
346
347
348
349
350
351
352
353
354
355
356
357
358
359
360
361
362
363
364
365
366
367
368
369
370
371
372
373
374
375
376
377
378
379
380
381
382
383
384
385
386
387
388
389
390
391
392
393
394
395
396
397
398
399
400
401
402
403
404
405
406
407
408
409
410
411
412
413
414
415
416
417
418
419
420
421
422
423
424
425
426
427
428
429
430
431
432
433
434
435
436
437
438
439
440
441
442
443
444
445
446
447
448
449
450
451
452
453
454
455
456
457
458
459
460
461
462
463
464
465
466
467
468
469
470
471
472
473
474
475
476
477
478
479
480
481
482
483
484
485
486
487
488
489
490
491
492
493
494
495
496
497
498
499
500
501
502
503
504
505
506
507
508
509
510
511
512
513
514
515
516
517
518
519
520
521
522
523
524
525
526
527
528
529
530
531
532
533
534
535
536
537
538
539
540
541
542
543
544
545
546
547
548
549
550
551
552
553
554
555
556
557
558
559
560
561
562
563
564
565
566
567
568
569
570
571
572
573
574
575
576
577
578
579
580
581
582
583
584
585
586
587
588
589
590
591
592
593
594
595
596
597
598
599
600
601
602
603
604
605
606
607
608
609
610
611
612
613
614
615
616
617
618
619
620
621
622
623
624
625
626
627
628
629
630
631
632
633
634
635
636
637
638
639
640
641
642
643
644
645
646
647
648
649
650
651
652
653
654
655
656
657
658
659
660
661
662
663
664
665
666
667
668
669
670
671
672
673
674
675
676
677
678
679
680
681
682
683
684
685
686
687
688
689
690
691
692
693
694
695
696
697
698
699
700
701
702
703
704
705
706
707
708
709
710
711
712
713
714
715
716
717
718
719
720
721
722
723
724
725
726
727
728
729
730
731
732
733
734
735
736
737
738
739
740
741
742
743
744
745
746
747
748
749
750
751
752
753
754
755
756
757
758
759
760
761
762
763
764
765
766
767
768
769
770
771
772
773
774
775
776
777
778
779
780
781
782
783
784
785
786
787
788
789
790
791
792
793
794
795
796
797
798
799
800
801
802
803
804
805
806
807
808
809
810
811
812
813
814
815
816
817
818
819
820
821
822
823
824
825
826
827
828
829
830
831
832
833
834
835
836
837
838
839
840
841
842
843
844
845
846
847
848
849
850
851
852
853
854
855
856
857
858
859
860
861
862
863
864
865
866
867
868
869
870
871
872
873
874
875
876
877
878
879
880
881
882
883
884
885
886
887
888
889
890
891
892
893
894
895
896
897
898
899
900
901
902
903
904
905
906
907
908
909
910
911
912
913
914
915
916
917
918
919
920
921
922
923
924
925
926
927
928
929
930
931
932
933
934
935
936
937
938
939
940
941
942
943
944
945
946
947
948
949
950
951
952
953
954
955
956
957
958
959
960
961
962
963
964
965
966
967
968
969
970
971
972
973
974
975
976
977
978
979
980
981
982
983
984
985
986
987
988
989
990
991
992
993
994
995
996
997
998
999
1000
1001
1002
1003
1004
1005
1006
1007
1008
1009
1010
1011
1012
1013
1014
1015
1016
1017
1018
1019
1020
1021
1022
1023
1024
1025
1026
1027
1028
1029
1030
1031
1032
1033
1034
1035
1036
1037
1038
1039
1040
1041
1042
1043
1044
1045
1046
1047
1048
1049
1050
1051
1052
1053
1054
1055
1056
1057
1058
1059
1060
1061
1062
1063
1064
1065
1066
1067
1068
1069
1070
1071
1072
1073
1074
1075
1076
1077
1078
1079
1080
1081
1082
1083
1084
1085
1086
1087
1088
1089
1090
1091
1092
1093
1094
1095
1096
1097
1098
1099
1100
1101
1102
1103
1104
1105
1106
1107
1108
1109
1110
1111
1112
1113
1114
1115
1116
1117
1118
1119
1120
1121
1122
1123
1124
1125
1126
1127
1128
1129
1130
1131
1132
1133
1134
1135
1136
1137
1138
1139
1140
1141
1142
1143
1144
1145
1146
1147
1148
1149
1150
1151
1152
1153
1154
1155
1156
1157
1158
1159
1160
1161
1162
1163
1164
1165
1166
1167
1168
1169
1170
1171
1172
1173
1174
1175
1176
1177
1178
1179
1180
1181
1182
1183
1184
1185
1186
1187
1188
1189
1190
1191
1192
1193
1194
1195
1196
1197
1198
1199
1200
1201
1202
1203
1204
1205
1206
1207
1208
1209
1210
1211
1212
1213
1214
1215
1216
1217
1218
1219
1220
1221
1222
1223
1224
1225
1226
1227
1228
1229
1230
1231
1232
1233
1234
1235
1236
1237
1238
1239
1240
1241
1242
1243
1244
1245
1246
1247
1248
1249
1250
1251
1252
1253
1254
1255
1256
1257
1258
1259
1260
1261
1262
1263
1264
1265
1266
1267
1268
1269
1270
1271
1272
1273
1274
1275
1276
1277
1278
1279
1280
1281
1282
1283
1284
1285
1286
1287
1288
1289
1290
1291
1292
1293
1294
1295
1296
1297
1298
1299
1300
1301
1302
1303
1304
1305
1306
1307
1308
1309
1310
1311
1312
1313
1314
1315
1316
1317
1318
1319
1320
1321
1322
1323
1324
1325
1326
1327
1328
1329
1330
1331
1332
1333
1334
1335
1336
1337
1338
1339
1340
1341
1342
1343
1344
1345
1346
1347
1348
1349
1350
1351
1352
1353
1354
1355
1356
1357
1358
1359
1360
1361
1362
1363
1364
1365
1366
1367
1368
1369
1370
1371
1372
1373
1374
1375
1376
1377
1378
1379
1380
1381
1382
1383
1384
1385
1386
1387
1388
1389
1390
1391
1392
1393
1394
1395
1396
1397
1398
1399
1400
1401
1402
1403
1404
1405
1406
1407
1408
1409
1410
1411
1412
1413
1414
1415
1416
1417
1418
1419
1420
1421
1422
1423
1424
1425
1426
1427
1428
1429
1430
1431
1432
1433
1434
1435
1436
1437
1438
1439
1440
1441
1442
1443
1444
1445
1446
1447
1448
1449
1450
1451
1452
1453
1454
1455
1456
1457
1458
1459
1460
1461
1462
1463
1464
1465
1466
1467
1468
1469
1470
1471
1472
1473
1474
1475
1476
1477
1478
1479
1480
1481
1482
1483
1484
1485
1486
1487
1488
1489
1490
1491
1492
1493
1494
1495
1496
1497
1498
1499
1500
1501
1502
1503
1504
1505
1506
1507
1508
1509
1510
1511
1512
1513
1514
1515
1516
1517
1518
1519
1520
1521
1522
1523
1524
1525
1526
1527
1528
1529
1530
1531
1532
1533
1534
1535
1536
1537
1538
1539
1540
1541
1542
1543
1544
1545
1546
1547
1548
1549
1550
1551
1552
1553
1554
1555
1556
1557
1558
1559
1560
1561
1562
1563
1564
1565
1566
1567
1568
1569
1570
1571
1572
1573
1574
1575
1576
1577
1578
1579
1580
1581
1582
1583
1584
1585
1586
1587
1588
1589
1590
1591
1592
1593
1594
1595
1596
1597
1598
1599
1600
1601
1602
1603
1604
1605
1606
1607
1608
1609
1610
1611
1612
1613
1614
1615
1616
1617
1618
1619
1620
1621
1622
1623
1624
1625
1626
1627
1628
1629
1630
1631
1632
1633
1634
1635
1636
1637
1638
1639
1640
1641
1642
1643
1644
1645
1646
1647
1648
1649
1650
1651
1652
1653
1654
1655
1656
1657
1658
1659
1660
1661
1662
1663
1664
1665
1666
1667
1668
1669
1670
1671
1672
1673
1674
1675
1676
1677
1678
1679
1680
1681
1682
1683
1684
1685
1686
1687
1688
1689
1690
1691
1692
1693
1694
1695
1696
1697
1698
1699
1700
1701
1702
1703
1704
1705
1706
1707
1708
1709
1710
1711
1712
1713
1714
1715
1716
1717
1718
1719
1720
1721
1722
1723
1724
1725
1726
1727
1728
1729
1730
1731
1732
1733
1734
1735
1736
1737
1738
1739
1740
1741
1742
1743
1744
1745
1746
1747
1748
1749
1750
1751
1752
1753
1754
1755
1756
1757
1758
1759
1760
1761
1762
1763
1764
1765
1766
1767
1768
1769
1770
1771
1772
1773
1774
1775
1776
1777
1778
1779
1780
1781
1782
1783
1784
1785
1786
1787
1788
1789
1790
1791
1792
1793
1794
1795
1796
1797
1798
1799
1800
1801
1802
1803
1804
1805
1806
1807
1808
1809
1810
1811
1812
1813
1814
1815
1816
1817
1818
1819
1820
1821
1822
1823
1824
1825
1826
1827
1828
1829
1830
1831
1832
1833
1834
1835
1836
1837
1838
1839
1840
1841
1842
1843
1844
1845
1846
1847
1848
1849
1850
1851
1852
1853
1854
1855
1856
1857
1858
1859
1860
1861
1862
1863
1864
1865
1866
1867
1868
1869
1870
1871
1872
1873
1874
1875
1876
1877
1878
1879
1880
1881
1882
1883
1884
1885
1886
1887
1888
1889
1890
1891
1892
1893
1894
1895
1896
1897
1898
1899
1900
1901
1902
1903
1904
1905
1906
1907
1908
1909
1910
1911
1912
1913
1914
1915
1916
1917
1918
1919
1920
1921
1922
1923
1924
1925
1926
1927
1928
1929
1930
1931
1932
1933
1934
1935
1936
1937
1938
1939
1940
1941
1942
1943
1944
1945
1946
1947
1948
1949
1950
1951
1952
1953
1954
1955
1956
1957
1958
1959
1960
1961
1962
1963
1964
1965
1966
1967
1968
1969
1970
1971
1972
1973
1974
1975
1976
1977
1978
1979
1980
1981
1982
1983
1984
1985
1986
1987
1988
1989
1990
1991
1992
1993
1994
1995
1996
1997
1998
1999
2000
2001
2002
2003
2004
2005
2006
2007
2008
2009
2010
2011
2012
2013
2014
2015
2016
2017
2018
2019
2020
2021
2022
2023
2024
2025
2026
2027
2028
2029
2030
2031
2032
2033
2034
2035
2036
2037
2038
2039
2040
2041
2042
2043
2044
2045
2046
2047
2048
2049
2050
2051
2052
2053
2054
2055
2056
2057
2058
2059
2060
2061
2062
2063
2064
2065
2066
2067
2068
2069
2070
2071
2072
2073
2074
2075
2076
2077
2078
2079
2080
2081
2082
2083
2084
2085
2086
2087
2088
2089
2090
2091
2092
2093
2094
2095
2096
2097
2098
2099
2100
2101
2102
2103
2104
2105
2106
2107
2108
2109
2110
2111
2112
2113
2114
2115
2116
2117
2118
2119
2120
2121
2122
2123
2124
2125
2126
2127
2128
2129
2130
2131
2132
2133
2134
2135
2136
2137
2138
2139
2140
2141
2142
2143
2144
2145
2146
2147
2148
2149
2150
2151
2152
2153
2154
2155
2156
2157
2158
2159
2160
2161
2162
2163
2164
2165
2166
2167
2168
2169
2170
2171
2172
2173
2174
2175
2176
2177
2178
2179
2180
2181
2182
2183
2184
2185
2186
2187
2188
2189
2190
2191
2192
2193
2194
2195
2196
2197
2198
2199
2200
2201
2202
2203
2204
2205
2206
2207
2208
2209
2210
2211
2212
2213
2214
2215
2216
2217
2218
2219
2220
2221
2222
2223
2224
2225
2226
2227
2228
2229
2230
2231
2232
2233
2234
2235
2236
2237
2238
2239
2240
2241
2242
2243
2244
2245
2246
2247
2248
2249
2250
2251
2252
2253
2254
2255
2256
2257
2258
2259
2260
2261
2262
2263
2264
2265
2266
2267
2268
2269
2270
2271
2272
2273
2274
2275
2276
2277
2278
2279
2280
2281
2282
2283
2284
2285
2286
2287
2288
2289
2290
2291
2292
2293
2294
2295
2296
2297
2298
2299
2300
2301
2302
2303
2304
2305
2306
2307
2308
2309
2310
2311
2312
2313
2314
2315
2316
2317
2318
2319
2320
2321
2322
2323
2324
2325
2326
2327
2328
2329
2330
2331
2332
2333
2334
2335
2336
2337
2338
2339
2340
2341
2342
2343
2344
2345
2346
2347
2348
2349
2350
2351
2352
2353
2354
2355
2356
2357
2358
2359
2360
2361
2362
2363
2364
2365
2366
2367
2368
2369
2370
2371
2372
2373
2374
2375
2376
2377
2378
2379
2380
2381
2382
2383
2384
2385
2386
2387
2388
2389
2390
2391
2392
2393
2394
2395
2396
2397
2398
2399
2400
2401
2402
2403
2404
2405
2406
2407
2408
2409
2410
2411
2412
2413
2414
2415
2416
2417
2418
2419
2420
2421
2422
2423
2424
2425
2426
2427
2428
2429
2430
2431
2432
2433
2434
2435
2436
2437
2438
2439
2440
2441
2442
2443
2444
2445
2446
2447
2448
2449
2450
2451
2452
2453
2454
2455
2456
2457
2458
2459
2460
2461
2462
2463
2464
2465
2466
2467
2468
2469
2470
2471
2472
2473
2474
2475
2476
2477
2478
2479
2480
2481
2482
2483
2484
2485
2486
2487
2488
2489
2490
2491
2492
2493
2494
2495
2496
2497
2498
2499
2500
2501
2502
2503
2504
2505
2506
2507
2508
2509
2510
2511
2512
2513
2514
2515
2516
2517
2518
2519
2520
2521
2522
2523
2524
2525
2526
2527
2528
2529
2530
2531
2532
2533
2534
2535
2536
2537
2538
2539
2540
2541
2542
2543
2544
2545
2546
2547
2548
2549
2550
2551
2552
2553
2554
2555
2556
2557
2558
2559
2560
2561
2562
2563
2564
2565
2566
2567
2568
2569
2570
2571
2572
2573
2574
2575
2576
2577
2578
2579
2580
2581
2582
2583
2584
2585
2586
2587
2588
2589
2590
2591
2592
2593
2594
2595
2596
2597
2598
2599
2600
2601
2602
2603
2604
2605
2606
2607
2608
2609
2610
2611
2612
2613
2614
2615
2616
2617
2618
2619
2620
2621
2622
2623
2624
2625
2626
2627
2628
2629
2630
2631
2632
2633
2634
2635
2636
2637
2638
2639
2640
2641
2642
2643
2644
2645
2646
2647
2648
2649
2650
2651
2652
2653
2654
2655
2656
2657
2658
2659
2660
2661
2662
2663
2664
2665
2666
2667
2668
2669
2670
2671
2672
2673
2674
2675
2676
2677
2678
2679
2680
2681
2682
2683
2684
2685
2686
2687
2688
2689
2690
2691
2692
2693
2694
2695
2696
2697
2698
2699
2700
2701
2702
2703
2704
2705
2706
2707
2708
2709
2710
2711
2712
2713
2714
2715
2716
2717
2718
2719
2720
2721
2722
2723
2724
2725
2726
2727
2728
2729
2730
2731
2732
2733
2734
2735
2736
2737
2738
2739
2740
2741
2742
2743
2744
2745
2746
2747
2748
2749
2750
2751
2752
2753
2754
2755
2756
2757
2758
2759
2760
2761
2762
2763
2764
2765
2766
2767
2768
2769
2770
2771
2772
2773
2774
2775
2776
2777
2778
2779
2780
2781
2782
2783
2784
2785
2786
2787
2788
2789
2790
2791
2792
2793
2794
2795
2796
2797
2798
2799
2800
2801
2802
2803
2804
2805
2806
2807
2808
2809
2810
2811
2812
2813
2814
2815
2816
2817
2818
2819
2820
2821
2822
2823
2824
2825
2826
2827
2828
2829
2830
2831
2832
2833
2834
2835
2836
2837
2838
2839
2840
2841
2842
2843
2844
2845
2846
2847
2848
2849
2850
2851
2852
2853
2854
2855
2856
2857
2858
2859
2860
2861
2862
2863
2864
2865
2866
2867
2868
2869
2870
2871
2872
2873
2874
2875
2876
2877
2878
2879
2880
2881
2882
2883
2884
2885
2886
2887
2888
2889
2890
2891
2892
2893
2894
2895
2896
2897
2898
2899
2900
2901
2902
2903
2904
2905
2906
2907
2908
2909
2910
2911
2912
2913
2914
2915
2916
2917
2918
2919
2920
2921
2922
2923
2924
2925
2926
2927
2928
2929
2930
2931
2932
2933
2934
2935
2936
2937
2938
2939
2940
2941
2942
2943
2944
2945
2946
2947
2948
2949
2950
2951
2952
2953
2954
2955
2956
2957
2958
2959
2960
2961
2962
2963
2964
2965
2966
2967
2968
2969
2970
2971
2972
2973
2974
2975
2976
2977
2978
2979
2980
2981
2982
2983
2984
2985
2986
2987
2988
2989
2990
2991
2992
2993
2994
2995
2996
2997
2998
2999
3000
3001
3002
3003
3004
3005
3006
3007
3008
3009
3010
3011
3012
3013
3014
3015
3016
3017
3018
3019
3020
3021
3022
3023
3024
3025
3026
3027
3028
3029
3030
3031
3032
3033
3034
3035
3036
3037
3038
3039
3040
3041
3042
3043
3044
3045
3046
3047
3048
3049
3050
3051
3052
3053
3054
3055
3056
3057
3058
3059
3060
3061
3062
3063
3064
3065
3066
3067
3068
3069
3070
3071
3072
3073
3074
3075
3076
3077
3078
3079
3080
3081
3082
3083
3084
3085
3086
3087
3088
3089
3090
3091
3092
3093
3094
3095
3096
3097
3098
3099
3100
3101
3102
3103
3104
3105
3106
3107
3108
3109
3110
3111
3112
3113
3114
3115
3116
3117
3118
3119
3120
3121
3122
3123
3124
3125
3126
3127
3128
3129
3130
3131
3132
3133
3134
3135
3136
3137
3138
3139
3140
3141
3142
3143
3144
3145
3146
3147
3148
3149
3150
3151
3152
3153
3154
3155
3156
3157
3158
3159
3160
3161
3162
3163
3164
3165
3166
3167
3168
3169
3170
3171
3172
3173
3174
3175
3176
3177
3178
3179
3180
3181
3182
3183
3184
3185
3186
3187
3188
3189
3190
3191
3192
3193
3194
3195
3196
3197
3198
3199
3200
3201
3202
3203
3204
3205
3206
3207
3208
3209
3210
3211
3212
3213
3214
3215
3216
3217
3218
3219
3220
3221
3222
3223
3224
3225
3226
3227
3228
3229
3230
3231
3232
3233
3234
3235
3236
3237
3238
3239
3240
3241
3242
3243
3244
3245
3246
3247
3248
3249
3250
3251
3252
3253
3254
3255
3256
3257
3258
3259
3260
3261
3262
3263
3264
3265
3266
3267
3268
3269
3270
3271
3272
3273
3274
3275
3276
3277
3278
3279
3280
3281
3282
3283
3284
3285
3286
3287
3288
3289
3290
3291
3292
3293
3294
3295
3296
3297
3298
3299
3300
3301
3302
3303
3304
3305
3306
3307
3308
3309
3310
3311
3312
3313
3314
3315
3316
3317
3318
3319
3320
3321
3322
3323
3324
3325
3326
3327
3328
3329
3330
3331
3332
3333
3334
3335
3336
3337
3338
3339
3340
3341
3342
3343
3344
3345
3346
3347
3348
3349
3350
3351
3352
3353
3354
3355
3356
3357
3358
3359
3360
3361
3362
3363
3364
3365
3366
3367
3368
3369
3370
3371
3372
3373
3374
3375
3376
3377
3378
3379
3380
3381
3382
3383
3384
3385
3386
3387
3388
3389
3390
3391
3392
3393
3394
3395
3396
3397
3398
3399
3400
3401
3402
3403
3404
3405
3406
3407
3408
3409
3410
3411
3412
3413
3414
3415
3416
3417
3418
3419
3420
3421
3422
3423
3424
3425
3426
3427
3428
3429
3430
3431
3432
3433
3434
3435
3436
3437
3438
3439
3440
3441
3442
3443
3444
3445
3446
3447
3448
3449
3450
3451
3452
3453
3454
3455
3456
3457
3458
3459
3460
3461
3462
3463
3464
3465
3466
3467
3468
3469
3470
3471
3472
3473
3474
3475
3476
3477
3478
3479
3480
3481
3482
3483
3484
3485
3486
3487
3488
3489
3490
3491
3492
3493
3494
3495
3496
3497
3498
3499
3500
3501
3502
3503
3504
3505
3506
3507
3508
3509
3510
3511
3512
3513
3514
3515
3516
3517
3518
3519
3520
3521
3522
3523
3524
3525
3526
3527
3528
3529
3530
3531
3532
3533
3534
3535
3536
3537
3538
3539
3540
3541
3542
3543
3544
3545
3546
3547
3548
3549
3550
3551
3552
3553
3554
3555
3556
3557
3558
3559
3560
3561
3562
3563
3564
3565
3566
3567
3568
3569
3570
3571
3572
3573
3574
3575
3576
3577
3578
3579
3580
3581
3582
3583
3584
3585
3586
3587
3588
3589
3590
3591
3592
3593
3594
3595
3596
3597
3598
3599
3600
3601
3602
3603
3604
3605
3606
3607
3608
3609
3610
3611
3612
3613
3614
3615
3616
3617
3618
3619
3620
3621
3622
3623
3624
3625
3626
3627
3628
3629
3630
3631
3632
3633
3634
3635
3636
3637
3638
3639
3640
3641
3642
3643
3644
3645
3646
3647
3648
3649
3650
3651
3652
3653
3654
3655
3656
3657
3658
3659
3660
3661
3662
3663
3664
3665
3666
3667
3668
3669
3670
3671
3672
3673
3674
3675
3676
3677
3678
3679
3680
3681
3682
3683
3684
3685
3686
3687
3688
3689
3690
3691
3692
3693
3694
3695
3696
3697
3698
3699
3700
3701
3702
3703
3704
3705
3706
3707
3708
3709
3710
3711
3712
3713
3714
3715
3716
3717
3718
3719
3720
3721
3722
3723
3724
3725
3726
3727
3728
3729
3730
3731
3732
3733
3734
3735
3736
3737
3738
3739
3740
3741
3742
3743
3744
3745
3746
3747
3748
3749
3750
3751
3752
3753
3754
3755
3756
3757
3758
3759
3760
3761
3762
3763
3764
3765
3766
3767
3768
3769
3770
3771
3772
3773
3774
3775
3776
3777
3778
3779
3780
3781
3782
3783
3784
3785
3786
3787
3788
3789
3790
3791
3792
3793
3794
3795
3796
3797
3798
3799
3800
3801
3802
3803
3804
3805
3806
3807
3808
3809
3810
3811
3812
3813
3814
3815
3816
3817
3818
3819
3820
3821
3822
3823
3824
3825
3826
3827
3828
3829
3830
3831
3832
3833
3834
3835
3836
3837
3838
3839
3840
3841
3842
3843
3844
3845
3846
3847
3848
3849
3850
3851
3852
3853
3854
3855
3856
3857
3858
3859
3860
3861
3862
3863
3864
3865
3866
3867
3868
3869
3870
3871
3872
3873
3874
3875
3876
3877
3878
3879
3880
3881
3882
3883
3884
3885
3886
3887
3888
3889
3890
3891
3892
3893
3894
3895
3896
3897
3898
3899
3900
3901
3902
3903
3904
3905
3906
3907
3908
3909
3910
3911
3912
3913
3914
3915
3916
3917
3918
3919
3920
3921
3922
3923
3924
3925
3926
3927
3928
3929
3930
3931
3932
3933
3934
3935
3936
3937
3938
3939
3940
3941
3942
3943
3944
3945
3946
3947
3948
3949
3950
3951
3952
3953
3954
3955
3956
3957
3958
3959
3960
3961
3962
3963
3964
3965
3966
3967
3968
3969
3970
3971
3972
3973
3974
3975
3976
3977
3978
3979
3980
3981
3982
3983
3984
3985
3986
3987
3988
3989
3990
3991
3992
3993
3994
3995
3996
3997
3998
3999
4000
4001
4002
4003
4004
4005
4006
4007
4008
4009
4010
4011
4012
4013
4014
4015
4016
4017
4018
4019
4020
4021
4022
4023
4024
4025
4026
4027
4028
4029
4030
4031
4032
4033
4034
4035
4036
4037
4038
4039
4040
4041
4042
4043
4044
4045
4046
4047
4048
4049
4050
4051
4052
4053
4054
4055
4056
4057
4058
4059
4060
4061
4062
4063
4064
4065
4066
4067
4068
4069
4070
4071
4072
4073
4074
4075
4076
4077
4078
4079
4080
4081
4082
4083
4084
4085
4086
4087
4088
4089
4090
4091
4092
4093
4094
4095
4096
4097
4098
4099
4100
4101
4102
4103
4104
4105
4106
4107
4108
4109
4110
4111
4112
4113
4114
4115
4116
4117
4118
4119
4120
4121
4122
4123
4124
4125
4126
4127
4128
4129
4130
4131
4132
4133
4134
4135
4136
4137
4138
4139
4140
4141
4142
4143
4144
4145
4146
4147
4148
4149
4150
4151
4152
4153
4154
4155
4156
4157
4158
4159
4160
4161
4162
4163
4164
4165
4166
4167
4168
4169
4170
4171
4172
4173
4174
4175
4176
4177
4178
4179
4180
4181
4182
4183
4184
4185
4186
4187
4188
4189
4190
4191
4192
4193
4194
4195
4196
4197
4198
4199
4200
4201
4202
4203
4204
4205
4206
4207
4208
4209
4210
4211
4212
4213
4214
4215
4216
4217
4218
4219
4220
4221
4222
4223
4224
4225
4226
4227
4228
4229
4230
4231
4232
4233
4234
4235
4236
4237
4238
4239
4240
4241
4242
4243
4244
4245
4246
4247
4248
4249
4250
4251
4252
4253
4254
4255
4256
4257
4258
4259
4260
4261
4262
4263
4264
4265
4266
4267
4268
4269
4270
4271
4272
4273
4274
4275
4276
4277
4278
4279
4280
4281
4282
4283
4284
4285
4286
4287
4288
4289
4290
4291
4292
4293
4294
4295
4296
4297
4298
4299
4300
4301
4302
4303
4304
4305
4306
4307
4308
4309
4310
4311
4312
4313
4314
4315
4316
4317
4318
4319
4320
4321
4322
4323
4324
4325
4326
4327
4328
4329
4330
4331
4332
4333
4334
4335
4336
4337
4338
4339
4340
4341
4342
4343
4344
4345
4346
4347
4348
4349
4350
4351
4352
4353
4354
4355
4356
4357
4358
4359
4360
4361
4362
4363
4364
4365
4366
4367
4368
4369
4370
4371
4372
4373
4374
4375
4376
4377
4378
4379
4380
4381
4382
4383
4384
4385
4386
4387
4388
4389
4390
4391
4392
4393
4394
4395
4396
4397
4398
4399
4400
4401
4402
4403
4404
4405
4406
4407
4408
4409
4410
4411
4412
4413
4414
4415
4416
4417
4418
4419
4420
4421
4422
4423
4424
4425
4426
4427
4428
4429
4430
4431
4432
4433
4434
4435
4436
4437
4438
4439
4440
4441
4442
4443
4444
4445
4446
4447
4448
4449
4450
4451
4452
4453
4454
4455
4456
4457
4458
4459
4460
4461
4462
4463
4464
4465
4466
4467
4468
4469
4470
4471
4472
4473
4474
4475
4476
4477
4478
4479
4480
4481
4482
4483
4484
4485
4486
4487
4488
4489
4490
4491
4492
4493
4494
4495
4496
4497
4498
4499
4500
4501
4502
4503
4504
4505
4506
4507
4508
4509
4510
4511
4512
4513
4514
4515
4516
4517
4518
4519
4520
4521
4522
4523
4524
4525
4526
4527
4528
4529
4530
4531
4532
4533
4534
4535
4536
4537
4538
4539
4540
4541
4542
4543
4544
4545
4546
4547
4548
4549
4550
4551
4552
4553
4554
4555
4556
4557
4558
4559
4560
4561
4562
4563
4564
4565
4566
4567
4568
4569
4570
4571
4572
4573
4574
4575
4576
4577
4578
4579
4580
4581
4582
4583
4584
4585
4586
4587
4588
4589
4590
4591
4592
4593
4594
4595
4596
4597
4598
4599
4600
4601
4602
4603
4604
4605
4606
4607
4608
4609
4610
4611
4612
4613
4614
4615
4616
4617
4618
4619
4620
4621
4622
4623
4624
4625
4626
4627
4628
4629
4630
4631
4632
4633
4634
4635
4636
4637
4638
4639
4640
4641
4642
4643
4644
4645
4646
4647
4648
4649
4650
4651
4652
4653
4654
4655
4656
4657
4658
4659
4660
4661
4662
4663
4664
4665
4666
4667
4668
4669
4670
4671
4672
4673
4674
4675
4676
4677
4678
4679
4680
4681
4682
4683
4684
4685
4686
4687
4688
4689
4690
4691
4692
4693
4694
4695
4696
4697
4698
4699
4700
4701
4702
4703
4704
4705
4706
4707
4708
4709
4710
4711
4712
4713
4714
4715
4716
4717
4718
4719
4720
4721
4722
4723
4724
4725
4726
4727
4728
4729
4730
4731
4732
4733
4734
4735
4736
4737
4738
4739
4740
4741
4742
4743
4744
4745
4746
4747
4748
4749
4750
4751
4752
4753
4754
4755
4756
4757
4758
4759
4760
4761
4762
4763
4764
4765
4766
4767
4768
4769
4770
4771
4772
4773
4774
4775
4776
4777
4778
4779
4780
4781
4782
4783
4784
4785
4786
4787
4788
4789
4790
4791
4792
4793
4794
4795
4796
4797
4798
4799
4800
4801
4802
4803
4804
4805
4806
4807
4808
4809
4810
4811
4812
4813
4814
4815
4816
4817
4818
4819
4820
4821
4822
4823
4824
4825
4826
4827
4828
4829
4830
4831
4832
4833
4834
4835
4836
4837
4838
4839
4840
4841
4842
4843
4844
4845
4846
4847
4848
4849
4850
4851
4852
4853
4854
4855
4856
4857
4858
4859
4860
4861
4862
4863
4864
4865
4866
4867
4868
4869
4870
4871
4872
4873
4874
4875
4876
4877
4878
4879
4880
4881
4882
4883
4884
4885
4886
4887
4888
4889
4890
4891
4892
4893
4894
4895
4896
4897
4898
4899
4900
4901
4902
4903
4904
4905
4906
4907
4908
4909
4910
4911
4912
4913
4914
4915
4916
4917
4918
4919
4920
4921
4922
4923
4924
4925
4926
4927
4928
4929
4930
4931
4932
4933
4934
4935
4936
4937
4938
4939
4940
4941
4942
4943
4944
4945
4946
4947
4948
4949
4950
4951
4952
4953
4954
4955
4956
4957
4958
4959
4960
4961
4962
4963
4964
4965
4966
4967
4968
4969
4970
4971
4972
4973
4974
4975
4976
4977
4978
4979
4980
4981
4982
4983
4984
4985
4986
4987
4988
4989
4990
4991
4992
4993
4994
4995
4996
4997
4998
4999
5000
5001
5002
5003
5004
5005
5006
5007
5008
5009
5010
5011
5012
5013
5014
5015
5016
5017
5018
5019
5020
5021
5022
5023
5024
5025
5026
5027
5028
5029
5030
5031
5032
5033
5034
5035
5036
5037
5038
5039
5040
5041
5042
5043
5044
5045
5046
5047
5048
5049
5050
5051
5052
5053
5054
5055
5056
5057
5058
5059
5060
5061
5062
5063
5064
5065
5066
5067
5068
5069
5070
5071
5072
5073
5074
5075
5076
5077
5078
5079
5080
5081
5082
5083
5084
5085
5086
5087
5088
5089
5090
5091
5092
5093
5094
5095
5096
5097
5098
5099
5100
5101
5102
5103
5104
5105
5106
5107
5108
5109
5110
5111
5112
5113
5114
5115
5116
5117
5118
5119
5120
5121
5122
5123
5124
5125
5126
5127
5128
5129
5130
5131
5132
5133
5134
5135
5136
5137
5138
5139
5140
5141
5142
5143
5144
5145
5146
5147
5148
5149
5150
5151
5152
5153
5154
5155
5156
5157
5158
5159
5160
5161
5162
5163
5164
5165
5166
5167
5168
5169
5170
5171
5172
5173
5174
5175
5176
5177
5178
5179
5180
5181
5182
5183
5184
5185
5186
5187
5188
5189
5190
5191
5192
5193
5194
5195
5196
5197
5198
5199
5200
5201
5202
5203
5204
5205
5206
5207
5208
5209
5210
5211
5212
5213
5214
5215
5216
5217
5218
5219
5220
5221
5222
5223
5224
5225
5226
5227
5228
5229
5230
5231
5232
5233
5234
5235
5236
5237
5238
5239
5240
5241
5242
5243
5244
5245
5246
5247
5248
5249
5250
5251
5252
5253
5254
5255
5256
5257
5258
5259
5260
5261
5262
5263
5264
5265
5266
5267
5268
5269
5270
5271
5272
5273
5274
5275
5276
5277
5278
5279
5280
5281
5282
5283
5284
5285
5286
5287
5288
5289
5290
5291
5292
5293
5294
5295
5296
5297
5298
5299
5300
5301
5302
5303
5304
5305
5306
5307
5308
5309
5310
5311
5312
5313
5314
5315
5316
5317
5318
5319
5320
5321
5322
5323
5324
5325
5326
5327
5328
5329
5330
5331
5332
5333
5334
5335
5336
5337
5338
5339
5340
5341
5342
5343
5344
5345
5346
5347
5348
5349
5350
5351
5352
5353
5354
5355
5356
5357
5358
5359
5360
5361
5362
5363
5364
5365
5366
5367
5368
5369
5370
5371
5372
5373
5374
5375
5376
5377
5378
5379
5380
5381
5382
5383
5384
5385
5386
5387
5388
5389
5390
5391
5392
5393
5394
5395
5396
5397
5398
5399
5400
5401
5402
5403
5404
5405
5406
5407
5408
5409
5410
5411
5412
5413
5414
5415
5416
5417
5418
5419
5420
5421
5422
5423
5424
5425
5426
5427
5428
5429
5430
5431
5432
5433
5434
5435
5436
5437
5438
5439
5440
5441
5442
5443
5444
5445
5446
5447
5448
5449
5450
5451
5452
5453
5454
5455
5456
5457
5458
5459
5460
5461
5462
5463
5464
5465
5466
5467
5468
5469
5470
5471
5472
5473
5474
5475
5476
5477
5478
5479
5480
5481
5482
5483
5484
5485
5486
5487
5488
5489
5490
5491
5492
5493
5494
5495
5496
5497
5498
5499
5500
5501
5502
5503
5504
5505
5506
5507
5508
5509
5510
5511
5512
5513
5514
5515
5516
5517
5518
5519
5520
5521
5522
5523
5524
5525
5526
5527
5528
5529
5530
5531
5532
5533
5534
5535
5536
5537
5538
5539
5540
5541
5542
5543
5544
5545
5546
5547
5548
5549
5550
5551
5552
5553
5554
5555
5556
5557
5558
5559
5560
5561
5562
5563
5564
5565
5566
5567
5568
5569
5570
5571
5572
5573
5574
5575
5576
5577
5578
5579
5580
5581
5582
5583
5584
5585
5586
5587
5588
5589
5590
5591
5592
5593
5594
5595
5596
5597
5598
5599
5600
5601
5602
5603
5604
5605
5606
5607
5608
5609
5610
5611
5612
5613
5614
5615
5616
5617
5618
5619
5620
5621
5622
5623
5624
5625
5626
5627
5628
5629
5630
5631
5632
5633
5634
5635
5636
5637
5638
5639
5640
5641
5642
5643
5644
5645
5646
5647
5648
5649
5650
5651
5652
5653
5654
5655
5656
5657
5658
5659
5660
5661
5662
5663
5664
5665
5666
5667
5668
5669
5670
5671
5672
5673
5674
5675
5676
5677
5678
5679
5680
5681
5682
5683
5684
5685
5686
5687
5688
5689
5690
5691
5692
5693
5694
5695
5696
5697
5698
5699
5700
5701
5702
5703
5704
5705
5706
5707
5708
5709
5710
5711
5712
5713
5714
5715
5716
5717
5718
5719
5720
5721
5722
5723
5724
5725
5726
5727
5728
5729
5730
5731
5732
5733
5734
5735
5736
5737
5738
5739
5740
5741
5742
5743
5744
5745
5746
5747
5748
5749
5750
5751
5752
5753
5754
5755
5756
5757
5758
5759
5760
5761
5762
5763
5764
5765
5766
5767
5768
5769
5770
5771
5772
5773
5774
5775
5776
5777
5778
5779
5780
5781
5782
5783
5784
5785
5786
5787
5788
5789
5790
5791
5792
5793
5794
5795
5796
5797
5798
5799
5800
5801
5802
5803
5804
5805
5806
5807
5808
5809
5810
5811
5812
5813
5814
5815
5816
5817
5818
5819
5820
5821
5822
5823
5824
5825
5826
5827
5828
5829
5830
5831
5832
5833
5834
5835
5836
5837
5838
5839
5840
5841
5842
5843
5844
5845
5846
5847
5848
5849
5850
5851
5852
5853
5854
5855
5856
5857
5858
5859
5860
5861
5862
5863
5864
5865
5866
5867
5868
5869
5870
5871
5872
5873
5874
5875
5876
5877
5878
5879
5880
5881
5882
5883
5884
5885
5886
5887
5888
5889
5890
5891
5892
5893
5894
5895
5896
5897
5898
5899
5900
5901
5902
5903
5904
5905
5906
5907
5908
5909
5910
5911
5912
5913
5914
5915
5916
5917
5918
5919
5920
5921
5922
5923
5924
5925
5926
5927
5928
5929
5930
5931
5932
5933
5934
5935
5936
5937
5938
5939
5940
5941
5942
5943
5944
5945
5946
5947
5948
5949
5950
5951
5952
5953
5954
5955
5956
5957
5958
5959
5960
5961
5962
5963
5964
5965
5966
5967
5968
5969
5970
5971
5972
5973
5974
5975
5976
5977
5978
5979
5980
5981
5982
5983
5984
5985
5986
5987
5988
5989
5990
5991
5992
5993
5994
5995
5996
5997
5998
5999
6000
6001
6002
6003
6004
6005
6006
6007
6008
6009
6010
6011
6012
6013
6014
6015
6016
6017
6018
6019
6020
6021
6022
6023
6024
6025
6026
6027
6028
6029
6030
6031
6032
6033
6034
6035
6036
6037
6038
6039
6040
6041
6042
6043
6044
6045
6046
6047
6048
6049
6050
6051
6052
6053
6054
6055
6056
6057
6058
6059
6060
6061
6062
6063
6064
6065
6066
6067
6068
6069
6070
6071
6072
6073
6074
6075
6076
6077
6078
6079
6080
6081
6082
6083
6084
6085
6086
6087
6088
6089
6090
6091
6092
6093
6094
6095
6096
6097
6098
6099
6100
6101
6102
6103
6104
6105
6106
6107
6108
6109
6110
6111
6112
6113
6114
6115
6116
6117
6118
6119
6120
6121
6122
6123
6124
6125
6126
6127
6128
6129
6130
6131
6132
6133
6134
6135
6136
6137
6138
6139
6140
6141
6142
6143
6144
6145
6146
6147
6148
6149
6150
6151
6152
6153
6154
6155
6156
6157
6158
6159
6160
6161
6162
6163
6164
6165
6166
6167
6168
6169
6170
6171
6172
6173
6174
6175
6176
6177
6178
6179
6180
6181
6182
6183
6184
6185
6186
6187
6188
6189
6190
6191
6192
6193
6194
6195
6196
6197
6198
6199
6200
6201
6202
6203
6204
6205
6206
6207
6208
6209
6210
6211
6212
6213
6214
6215
6216
6217
6218
6219
6220
6221
6222
6223
6224
6225
6226
6227
6228
6229
6230
6231
6232
6233
6234
6235
6236
6237
6238
6239
6240
6241
6242
6243
6244
6245
6246
6247
6248
6249
6250
6251
6252
6253
6254
6255
6256
6257
6258
6259
6260
6261
6262
6263
6264
6265
6266
6267
6268
6269
6270
6271
6272
6273
6274
6275
6276
6277
6278
6279
6280
6281
6282
6283
6284
6285
6286
6287
6288
6289
6290
6291
6292
6293
6294
6295
6296
6297
6298
6299
6300
6301
6302
6303
6304
6305
6306
6307
6308
6309
6310
6311
6312
6313
6314
6315
6316
6317
6318
6319
6320
6321
6322
6323
6324
6325
6326
6327
6328
6329
6330
6331
6332
6333
6334
6335
6336
6337
6338
6339
6340
6341
6342
6343
6344
6345
6346
6347
6348
6349
6350
6351
6352
6353
6354
6355
6356
6357
6358
6359
6360
6361
6362
6363
6364
6365
6366
6367
6368
6369
6370
6371
6372
6373
6374
6375
6376
6377
6378
6379
6380
6381
6382
6383
6384
6385
6386
6387
6388
6389
6390
6391
6392
6393
6394
6395
6396
6397
6398
6399
6400
6401
6402
6403
6404
6405
6406
6407
6408
6409
6410
6411
6412
6413
6414
6415
6416
6417
6418
6419
6420
6421
6422
6423
6424
6425
6426
6427
6428
6429
6430
6431
6432
6433
6434
6435
6436
6437
6438
6439
6440
6441
6442
6443
6444
6445
6446
6447
6448
6449
6450
6451
6452
6453
6454
6455
6456
6457
6458
6459
6460
6461
6462
6463
6464
6465
6466
6467
6468
6469
6470
6471
6472
6473
6474
6475
6476
6477
6478
6479
6480
6481
6482
6483
6484
6485
6486
6487
6488
6489
6490
6491
6492
6493
6494
6495
6496
6497
6498
6499
6500
6501
6502
6503
6504
6505
6506
6507
6508
6509
6510
6511
6512
6513
6514
6515
6516
6517
6518
6519
6520
6521
6522
6523
6524
6525
6526
6527
6528
6529
6530
6531
6532
6533
6534
6535
6536
6537
6538
6539
6540
6541
6542
6543
6544
6545
6546
6547
6548
6549
6550
6551
6552
6553
6554
6555
6556
6557
6558
6559
6560
6561
6562
6563
6564
6565
6566
6567
6568
6569
6570
6571
6572
6573
6574
6575
6576
6577
6578
6579
6580
6581
6582
6583
6584
6585
6586
6587
6588
6589
6590
6591
6592
6593
6594
6595
6596
6597
6598
6599
6600
6601
6602
6603
6604
6605
6606
6607
6608
6609
6610
6611
6612
6613
6614
6615
6616
6617
6618
6619
6620
6621
6622
6623
6624
6625
6626
6627
6628
6629
6630
6631
6632
6633
6634
6635
6636
6637
6638
6639
6640
6641
6642
6643
6644
6645
6646
6647
6648
6649
6650
6651
6652
6653
6654
6655
6656
6657
6658
6659
6660
6661
6662
6663
6664
6665
6666
6667
6668
6669
6670
6671
6672
6673
6674
6675
6676
6677
6678
6679
6680
6681
6682
6683
6684
6685
6686
6687
6688
6689
6690
6691
6692
6693
6694
6695
6696
6697
6698
6699
6700
6701
6702
6703
6704
6705
6706
6707
6708
6709
6710
6711
6712
6713
6714
6715
6716
6717
6718
6719
6720
6721
6722
6723
6724
6725
6726
6727
6728
6729
6730
6731
6732
6733
6734
6735
6736
6737
6738
6739
6740
6741
6742
6743
6744
6745
6746
6747
6748
6749
6750
6751
6752
6753
6754
6755
6756
6757
6758
6759
6760
6761
6762
6763
6764
6765
6766
6767
6768
6769
6770
6771
6772
6773
6774
6775
6776
6777
6778
6779
6780
6781
6782
6783
6784
6785
6786
6787
6788
6789
6790
6791
6792
6793
6794
6795
6796
6797
6798
6799
6800
6801
6802
6803
6804
6805
6806
6807
6808
6809
6810
6811
6812
6813
6814
6815
6816
6817
6818
6819
6820
6821
6822
6823
6824
6825
6826
6827
6828
6829
6830
6831
6832
6833
6834
6835
6836
6837
6838
6839
6840
6841
6842
6843
6844
6845
6846
6847
6848
6849
6850
6851
6852
6853
6854
6855
6856
6857
6858
6859
6860
6861
6862
6863
6864
6865
6866
6867
6868
6869
6870
6871
6872
6873
6874
6875
6876
6877
6878
6879
6880
6881
6882
6883
6884
6885
6886
6887
6888
6889
6890
6891
6892
6893
6894
6895
6896
6897
6898
6899
6900
6901
6902
6903
6904
6905
6906
6907
6908
6909
6910
6911
6912
6913
6914
6915
6916
6917
6918
6919
6920
6921
6922
6923
6924
6925
6926
6927
6928
6929
6930
6931
6932
6933
6934
6935
6936
6937
6938
6939
6940
6941
6942
6943
6944
6945
6946
6947
6948
6949
6950
6951
6952
6953
6954
6955
6956
6957
6958
6959
6960
6961
6962
6963
6964
6965
6966
6967
6968
6969
6970
6971
6972
6973
6974
6975
6976
6977
6978
6979
6980
6981
6982
6983
6984
6985
6986
6987
6988
6989
6990
6991
6992
6993
6994
6995
6996
6997
6998
6999
7000
7001
7002
7003
7004
7005
7006
7007
7008
7009
7010
7011
7012
7013
7014
7015
7016
7017
7018
7019
7020
7021
7022
7023
7024
7025
7026
7027
7028
7029
7030
7031
7032
7033
7034
7035
7036
7037
7038
7039
7040
7041
7042
7043
7044
7045
7046
7047
7048
7049
7050
7051
7052
7053
7054
7055
7056
7057
7058
7059
7060
7061
7062
7063
7064
7065
7066
7067
7068
7069
7070
7071
7072
7073
7074
7075
7076
7077
7078
7079
7080
7081
7082
7083
7084
7085
7086
7087
7088
7089
7090
7091
7092
7093
7094
7095
7096
7097
7098
7099
7100
7101
7102
7103
7104
7105
7106
7107
7108
7109
7110
7111
7112
7113
7114
7115
7116
7117
7118
7119
7120
7121
7122
7123
7124
7125
7126
7127
7128
7129
7130
7131
7132
7133
7134
7135
7136
7137
7138
7139
7140
7141
7142
7143
7144
7145
7146
7147
7148
7149
7150
7151
7152
7153
7154
7155
7156
7157
7158
7159
7160
7161
7162
7163
7164
7165
7166
7167
7168
7169
7170
7171
7172
7173
7174
7175
7176
7177
7178
7179
7180
7181
7182
7183
7184
7185
7186
7187
7188
7189
7190
7191
7192
7193
7194
7195
7196
7197
7198
7199
7200
7201
7202
7203
7204
7205
7206
7207
7208
7209
7210
7211
7212
7213
7214
7215
7216
7217
7218
7219
7220
7221
7222
7223
7224
7225
7226
7227
7228
7229
7230
7231
7232
7233
7234
7235
7236
7237
7238
7239
7240
7241
7242
7243
7244
7245
7246
7247
7248
7249
7250
7251
7252
7253
7254
7255
7256
7257
7258
7259
7260
7261
7262
7263
7264
7265
7266
7267
7268
7269
7270
7271
7272
7273
7274
7275
7276
7277
7278
7279
7280
7281
7282
7283
7284
7285
7286
7287
7288
7289
7290
7291
7292
7293
7294
7295
7296
7297
7298
7299
7300
7301
7302
7303
7304
7305
7306
7307
7308
7309
7310
7311
7312
7313
7314
7315
7316
7317
7318
7319
7320
7321
7322
7323
7324
7325
7326
7327
7328
7329
7330
7331
7332
7333
7334
7335
7336
7337
7338
7339
7340
7341
7342
7343
7344
7345
7346
7347
7348
7349
7350
7351
7352
7353
7354
7355
7356
7357
7358
7359
7360
7361
7362
7363
7364
7365
7366
7367
7368
7369
7370
7371
7372
7373
7374
7375
7376
7377
7378
7379
7380
7381
7382
7383
7384
7385
7386
7387
7388
7389
7390
7391
7392
7393
7394
7395
7396
7397
7398
7399
7400
7401
7402
7403
7404
7405
7406
7407
7408
7409
7410
7411
7412
7413
7414
7415
7416
7417
7418
7419
7420
7421
7422
7423
7424
7425
7426
7427
7428
7429
7430
7431
7432
7433
7434
7435
7436
7437
7438
7439
7440
7441
7442
7443
7444
7445
7446
7447
7448
7449
7450
7451
7452
7453
7454
7455
7456
7457
7458
7459
7460
7461
7462
7463
7464
7465
7466
7467
7468
7469
7470
7471
7472
7473
7474
7475
7476
7477
7478
7479
7480
7481
7482
7483
7484
7485
7486
7487
7488
7489
7490
7491
7492
7493
7494
7495
7496
7497
7498
7499
7500
7501
7502
7503
7504
7505
7506
7507
7508
7509
7510
7511
7512
7513
7514
7515
7516
7517
7518
7519
7520
7521
7522
7523
7524
7525
7526
7527
7528
7529
7530
7531
7532
7533
7534
7535
7536
7537
7538
7539
7540
7541
7542
7543
7544
7545
7546
7547
7548
7549
7550
7551
7552
7553
7554
7555
7556
7557
7558
7559
7560
7561
7562
7563
7564
7565
7566
7567
7568
7569
7570
7571
7572
7573
7574
7575
7576
7577
7578
7579
7580
7581
7582
7583
7584
7585
7586
7587
7588
7589
7590
7591
7592
7593
7594
7595
7596
7597
7598
7599
7600
7601
7602
7603
7604
7605
7606
7607
7608
7609
7610
7611
7612
7613
7614
7615
7616
7617
7618
7619
7620
7621
7622
7623
7624
7625
7626
7627
7628
7629
7630
7631
7632
7633
7634
7635
7636
7637
7638
7639
7640
7641
7642
7643
7644
7645
7646
7647
7648
7649
7650
7651
7652
7653
7654
7655
7656
7657
7658
7659
7660
7661
7662
7663
7664
7665
7666
7667
7668
7669
7670
7671
7672
7673
7674
7675
7676
7677
7678
7679
7680
7681
7682
7683
7684
7685
7686
7687
7688
7689
7690
7691
7692
7693
7694
7695
7696
7697
7698
7699
7700
7701
7702
7703
7704
7705
7706
7707
7708
7709
7710
7711
7712
7713
7714
7715
7716
7717
7718
7719
7720
7721
7722
7723
7724
7725
7726
7727
7728
7729
7730
7731
7732
7733
7734
7735
7736
7737
7738
7739
7740
7741
7742
7743
7744
7745
7746
7747
7748
7749
7750
7751
7752
7753
7754
7755
7756
7757
7758
7759
7760
7761
7762
7763
7764
7765
7766
7767
7768
7769
7770
7771
7772
7773
7774
7775
7776
7777
7778
7779
7780
7781
7782
7783
7784
7785
7786
7787
7788
7789
7790
7791
7792
7793
7794
7795
7796
7797
7798
7799
7800
7801
7802
7803
7804
7805
7806
7807
7808
7809
7810
7811
7812
7813
7814
7815
7816
7817
7818
7819
7820
7821
7822
7823
7824
7825
7826
7827
7828
7829
7830
7831
7832
7833
7834
7835
7836
7837
7838
7839
7840
7841
7842
7843
7844
7845
7846
7847
7848
7849
7850
7851
7852
7853
7854
7855
7856
7857
7858
7859
7860
7861
7862
7863
7864
7865
7866
7867
7868
7869
7870
7871
7872
7873
7874
7875
7876
7877
7878
7879
7880
7881
7882
7883
7884
7885
7886
7887
7888
7889
7890
7891
7892
7893
7894
7895
7896
7897
7898
7899
7900
7901
7902
7903
7904
7905
7906
7907
7908
7909
7910
7911
7912
7913
7914
7915
7916
7917
7918
7919
7920
7921
7922
7923
7924
7925
7926
7927
7928
7929
7930
7931
7932
7933
7934
7935
7936
7937
7938
7939
7940
7941
7942
7943
7944
7945
7946
7947
7948
7949
7950
7951
7952
7953
7954
7955
7956
7957
7958
7959
7960
7961
7962
7963
7964
7965
7966
7967
7968
7969
7970
7971
7972
7973
7974
7975
7976
7977
7978
7979
7980
7981
7982
7983
7984
7985
7986
7987
7988
7989
7990
7991
7992
7993
7994
7995
7996
7997
7998
7999
8000
8001
8002
8003
8004
8005
8006
8007
8008
8009
8010
8011
8012
8013
8014
8015
8016
8017
8018
8019
8020
8021
8022
8023
8024
8025
8026
8027
8028
8029
8030
8031
8032
8033
8034
8035
8036
8037
8038
8039
8040
8041
8042
8043
8044
8045
8046
8047
8048
8049
8050
8051
8052
8053
8054
8055
8056
8057
8058
8059
8060
8061
8062
8063
8064
8065
8066
8067
8068
8069
8070
8071
8072
8073
8074
8075
8076
8077
8078
8079
8080
8081
8082
8083
8084
8085
8086
8087
8088
8089
8090
8091
8092
8093
8094
8095
8096
8097
8098
8099
8100
8101
8102
8103
8104
8105
8106
8107
8108
8109
8110
8111
8112
8113
8114
8115
8116
8117
8118
8119
8120
8121
8122
8123
8124
8125
8126
8127
8128
8129
8130
8131
8132
8133
8134
8135
8136
8137
8138
8139
8140
8141
8142
8143
8144
8145
8146
8147
8148
8149
8150
8151
8152
8153
8154
8155
8156
8157
8158
8159
8160
8161
8162
8163
8164
8165
8166
8167
8168
8169
8170
8171
8172
8173
8174
8175
8176
8177
8178
8179
8180
8181
8182
8183
8184
8185
8186
8187
8188
8189
8190
8191
8192
8193
8194
8195
8196
8197
8198
8199
8200
8201
8202
8203
8204
8205
8206
8207
8208
8209
8210
8211
8212
8213
8214
8215
8216
8217
8218
8219
8220
8221
8222
8223
8224
8225
8226
8227
8228
8229
8230
8231
8232
8233
8234
8235
8236
8237
8238
8239
8240
8241
8242
8243
8244
8245
8246
8247
8248
8249
8250
8251
8252
8253
8254
8255
8256
8257
8258
8259
8260
8261
8262
8263
8264
8265
8266
8267
8268
8269
8270
8271
8272
8273
8274
8275
8276
8277
8278
8279
8280
8281
8282
8283
8284
8285
8286
8287
8288
8289
8290
8291
8292
8293
8294
8295
8296
8297
8298
8299
8300
8301
8302
8303
8304
8305
8306
8307
8308
8309
8310
8311
8312
8313
8314
8315
8316
8317
8318
8319
8320
8321
8322
8323
8324
8325
8326
8327
8328
8329
8330
8331
8332
8333
8334
8335
8336
8337
8338
8339
8340
8341
8342
8343
8344
8345
8346
8347
8348
8349
8350
8351
8352
8353
8354
8355
8356
8357
8358
8359
8360
8361
8362
8363
8364
8365
8366
8367
8368
8369
8370
8371
8372
8373
8374
8375
8376
8377
8378
8379
8380
8381
8382
8383
8384
8385
8386
8387
8388
8389
8390
8391
8392
8393
8394
8395
8396
8397
8398
8399
8400
8401
8402
8403
8404
8405
8406
8407
8408
8409
8410
8411
8412
8413
8414
8415
8416
8417
8418
8419
8420
8421
8422
8423
8424
8425
8426
8427
8428
8429
8430
8431
8432
8433
8434
8435
8436
8437
8438
8439
8440
8441
8442
8443
8444
8445
8446
8447
8448
8449
8450
8451
8452
8453
8454
8455
8456
8457
8458
8459
8460
8461
8462
8463
8464
8465
8466
8467
8468
8469
8470
8471
8472
8473
8474
8475
8476
8477
8478
8479
8480
8481
8482
8483
8484
8485
8486
8487
8488
8489
8490
8491
8492
8493
8494
8495
8496
8497
8498
8499
8500
8501
8502
8503
8504
8505
8506
8507
8508
8509
8510
8511
8512
8513
8514
8515
8516
8517
8518
8519
8520
8521
8522
8523
8524
8525
8526
8527
8528
8529
8530
8531
8532
8533
8534
8535
8536
8537
8538
8539
8540
8541
8542
8543
8544
8545
8546
8547
8548
8549
8550
8551
8552
8553
8554
8555
8556
8557
8558
8559
8560
8561
8562
8563
8564
8565
8566
8567
8568
8569
8570
8571
8572
8573
8574
8575
8576
8577
8578
8579
8580
8581
8582
8583
8584
8585
8586
8587
8588
8589
8590
8591
8592
8593
8594
8595
8596
8597
8598
8599
8600
8601
8602
8603
8604
8605
8606
8607
8608
8609
8610
8611
8612
8613
8614
8615
8616
8617
8618
8619
8620
8621
8622
8623
8624
8625
8626
8627
8628
8629
8630
8631
8632
8633
8634
8635
8636
8637
8638
8639
8640
8641
8642
8643
8644
8645
8646
8647
8648
8649
8650
8651
8652
8653
8654
8655
8656
8657
8658
8659
8660
8661
8662
8663
8664
8665
8666
8667
8668
8669
8670
8671
8672
8673
8674
8675
8676
8677
8678
8679
8680
8681
8682
8683
8684
8685
8686
8687
8688
8689
8690
8691
8692
8693
8694
8695
8696
8697
8698
8699
8700
8701
8702
8703
8704
8705
8706
8707
8708
8709
8710
8711
8712
8713
8714
8715
8716
8717
8718
8719
8720
8721
8722
8723
8724
8725
8726
8727
8728
8729
8730
8731
8732
8733
8734
8735
8736
8737
8738
8739
8740
8741
8742
8743
8744
8745
8746
8747
8748
8749
8750
8751
8752
8753
8754
8755
8756
8757
8758
8759
8760
8761
8762
8763
8764
8765
8766
8767
8768
8769
8770
8771
8772
8773
8774
8775
8776
8777
8778
8779
8780
8781
8782
8783
8784
8785
8786
8787
8788
8789
8790
8791
8792
8793
8794
8795
8796
8797
8798
8799
8800
8801
8802
8803
8804
8805
8806
8807
8808
8809
8810
8811
8812
8813
8814
8815
8816
8817
8818
8819
8820
8821
8822
8823
8824
8825
8826
8827
8828
8829
8830
8831
8832
8833
8834
8835
8836
8837
8838
8839
8840
8841
8842
8843
8844
8845
8846
8847
8848
8849
8850
8851
8852
8853
8854
8855
8856
8857
8858
8859
8860
8861
8862
8863
8864
8865
8866
8867
8868
8869
8870
8871
8872
8873
8874
8875
8876
8877
8878
8879
8880
8881
8882
8883
8884
8885
8886
8887
8888
8889
8890
8891
8892
8893
8894
8895
8896
8897
8898
8899
8900
8901
8902
8903
8904
8905
8906
8907
8908
8909
8910
8911
8912
8913
8914
8915
8916
8917
8918
8919
8920
8921
8922
8923
8924
8925
8926
8927
8928
8929
8930
8931
8932
8933
8934
8935
8936
8937
8938
8939
8940
8941
8942
8943
8944
8945
8946
8947
8948
8949
8950
8951
8952
8953
8954
8955
8956
8957
8958
8959
8960
8961
8962
8963
8964
8965
8966
8967
8968
8969
8970
8971
8972
8973
8974
8975
8976
8977
8978
8979
8980
8981
8982
8983
8984
8985
8986
8987
8988
8989
8990
8991
8992
8993
8994
8995
8996
8997
8998
8999
9000
9001
9002
9003
9004
9005
9006
9007
9008
9009
9010
9011
9012
9013
9014
9015
9016
9017
9018
9019
9020
9021
9022
9023
9024
9025
9026
9027
9028
9029
9030
9031
9032
9033
9034
9035
9036
9037
9038
9039
9040
9041
9042
9043
9044
9045
9046
9047
9048
9049
9050
9051
9052
9053
9054
9055
9056
9057
9058
9059
9060
9061
9062
9063
9064
9065
9066
9067
9068
9069
9070
9071
9072
9073
9074
9075
9076
9077
9078
9079
9080
9081
9082
9083
9084
9085
9086
9087
9088
9089
9090
9091
9092
9093
9094
9095
9096
9097
9098
9099
9100
9101
9102
9103
9104
9105
9106
9107
9108
9109
9110
9111
9112
9113
9114
9115
9116
9117
9118
9119
9120
9121
9122
9123
9124
9125
9126
9127
9128
9129
9130
9131
9132
9133
9134
9135
9136
9137
9138
9139
9140
9141
9142
9143
9144
9145
9146
9147
9148
9149
9150
9151
9152
9153
9154
9155
9156
9157
9158
9159
9160
9161
9162
9163
9164
9165
9166
9167
9168
9169
9170
9171
9172
9173
9174
9175
9176
9177
9178
9179
9180
9181
9182
9183
9184
9185
9186
9187
9188
9189
9190
9191
9192
9193
9194
9195
9196
9197
9198
9199
9200
9201
9202
9203
9204
9205
9206
9207
9208
9209
9210
9211
9212
9213
9214
9215
9216
9217
9218
9219
9220
9221
9222
9223
9224
9225
9226
9227
9228
9229
9230
9231
9232
9233
9234
9235
9236
9237
9238
9239
9240
9241
9242
9243
9244
9245
9246
9247
9248
9249
9250
9251
9252
9253
9254
9255
9256
9257
9258
9259
9260
9261
9262
9263
9264
9265
9266
9267
9268
9269
9270
9271
9272
9273
9274
9275
9276
9277
9278
9279
9280
9281
9282
9283
9284
9285
9286
9287
9288
9289
9290
9291
9292
9293
9294
9295
9296
9297
9298
9299
9300
9301
9302
9303
9304
9305
9306
9307
9308
9309
9310
9311
9312
9313
9314
9315
9316
9317
9318
9319
9320
9321
9322
9323
9324
9325
9326
9327
9328
9329
9330
9331
9332
9333
9334
9335
9336
9337
9338
9339
9340
9341
9342
9343
9344
9345
9346
9347
9348
9349
9350
9351
9352
9353
9354
9355
9356
9357
9358
9359
9360
9361
9362
9363
9364
9365
9366
9367
9368
9369
9370
9371
9372
9373
9374
9375
9376
9377
9378
9379
9380
9381
9382
9383
9384
9385
9386
9387
9388
9389
9390
9391
9392
9393
9394
9395
9396
9397
9398
9399
9400
9401
9402
9403
9404
9405
9406
9407
9408
9409
9410
9411
9412
9413
9414
9415
9416
9417
9418
9419
9420
9421
9422
9423
9424
9425
9426
9427
9428
9429
9430
9431
9432
9433
9434
9435
9436
9437
9438
9439
9440
9441
9442
9443
9444
9445
9446
9447
9448
9449
9450
9451
9452
9453
9454
9455
9456
9457
9458
9459
9460
9461
9462
9463
9464
9465
9466
9467
9468
9469
9470
9471
9472
9473
9474
9475
9476
9477
9478
9479
9480
9481
9482
9483
9484
9485
9486
9487
9488
9489
9490
9491
9492
9493
9494
9495
9496
9497
9498
9499
9500
9501
9502
9503
9504
9505
9506
9507
9508
9509
9510
9511
9512
9513
9514
9515
9516
9517
9518
9519
9520
9521
9522
9523
9524
9525
9526
9527
9528
9529
9530
9531
9532
9533
9534
9535
9536
9537
9538
9539
9540
9541
9542
9543
9544
9545
9546
9547
9548
9549
9550
9551
9552
9553
9554
9555
9556
9557
9558
9559
9560
9561
9562
9563
9564
9565
9566
9567
9568
9569
9570
9571
9572
9573
9574
9575
9576
9577
9578
9579
9580
9581
9582
9583
9584
9585
9586
9587
9588
9589
9590
9591
9592
9593
9594
9595
9596
9597
9598
9599
9600
9601
9602
9603
9604
9605
9606
9607
9608
9609
9610
9611
9612
9613
9614
9615
9616
9617
9618
9619
9620
9621
9622
9623
9624
9625
9626
9627
9628
9629
9630
9631
9632
9633
9634
9635
9636
9637
9638
9639
9640
9641
9642
9643
9644
9645
9646
9647
9648
9649
9650
9651
9652
9653
9654
9655
9656
9657
9658
9659
9660
9661
9662
9663
9664
9665
9666
9667
9668
9669
9670
9671
9672
9673
9674
9675
9676
9677
9678
9679
9680
9681
9682
9683
9684
9685
9686
9687
9688
9689
9690
9691
9692
9693
9694
9695
9696
9697
9698
9699
9700
9701
9702
9703
9704
9705
9706
9707
9708
9709
9710
9711
9712
9713
9714
9715
9716
9717
9718
9719
9720
9721
9722
9723
9724
9725
9726
9727
9728
9729
9730
9731
9732
9733
9734
9735
9736
9737
9738
9739
9740
9741
9742
9743
9744
9745
9746
9747
9748
9749
9750
9751
9752
9753
9754
9755
9756
9757
9758
9759
9760
9761
9762
9763
9764
9765
9766
9767
9768
9769
9770
9771
9772
9773
9774
9775
9776
9777
9778
9779
9780
9781
9782
9783
9784
9785
9786
9787
9788
9789
9790
9791
9792
9793
9794
9795
9796
9797
9798
9799
9800
9801
9802
9803
9804
9805
9806
9807
9808
9809
9810
9811
9812
9813
9814
9815
9816
9817
9818
9819
9820
9821
9822
9823
9824
9825
9826
9827
9828
9829
9830
9831
9832
9833
9834
9835
9836
9837
9838
9839
9840
9841
9842
9843
9844
9845
9846
9847
9848
9849
9850
9851
9852
9853
9854
9855
9856
9857
9858
9859
9860
9861
9862
9863
9864
9865
9866
9867
9868
9869
9870
9871
9872
9873
9874
9875
9876
9877
9878
9879
9880
9881
9882
9883
9884
9885
9886
9887
9888
9889
9890
9891
9892
9893
9894
9895
9896
9897
9898
9899
9900
9901
9902
9903
9904
9905
9906
9907
9908
9909
9910
9911
9912
9913
9914
9915
9916
9917
9918
9919
9920
9921
9922
9923
9924
9925
9926
9927
9928
9929
9930
9931
9932
9933
9934
9935
9936
9937
9938
9939
9940
9941
9942
9943
9944
9945
9946
9947
9948
9949
9950
9951
9952
9953
9954
9955
9956
9957
9958
9959
9960
9961
9962
9963
9964
9965
9966
9967
9968
9969
9970
9971
9972
9973
9974
9975
9976
9977
9978
9979
9980
9981
9982
9983
9984
9985
9986
9987
9988
9989
9990
9991
9992
9993
9994
9995
9996
9997
9998
9999
10000
10001
10002
10003
10004
10005
10006
10007
10008
10009
10010
10011
10012
10013
10014
10015
10016
10017
10018
10019
10020
10021
10022
10023
10024
10025
10026
10027
10028
10029
10030
10031
10032
10033
10034
10035
10036
10037
10038
10039
10040
10041
10042
10043
10044
10045
10046
10047
10048
10049
10050
10051
10052
10053
10054
10055
10056
10057
10058
10059
10060
10061
10062
10063
10064
10065
10066
10067
10068
10069
10070
10071
10072
10073
10074
10075
10076
10077
10078
10079
10080
10081
10082
10083
10084
10085
10086
10087
10088
10089
10090
10091
10092
10093
10094
10095
10096
10097
10098
10099
10100
10101
10102
10103
10104
10105
10106
10107
10108
10109
10110
10111
10112
10113
10114
10115
10116
10117
10118
10119
10120
10121
10122
10123
10124
10125
10126
10127
10128
10129
10130
10131
10132
10133
10134
10135
10136
10137
10138
10139
10140
10141
10142
10143
10144
10145
10146
10147
10148
10149
10150
10151
10152
10153
10154
10155
10156
10157
10158
10159
10160
10161
10162
10163
10164
10165
10166
10167
10168
10169
10170
10171
10172
10173
10174
10175
10176
10177
10178
10179
10180
10181
10182
10183
10184
10185
10186
10187
10188
10189
10190
10191
10192
10193
10194
10195
10196
10197
10198
10199
10200
10201
10202
10203
10204
10205
10206
10207
10208
10209
10210
10211
10212
10213
10214
10215
10216
10217
10218
10219
10220
10221
10222
10223
10224
10225
10226
10227
10228
10229
10230
10231
10232
10233
10234
10235
10236
10237
10238
10239
10240
10241
10242
10243
10244
10245
10246
10247
10248
10249
10250
10251
10252
10253
10254
10255
10256
10257
10258
10259
10260
10261
10262
10263
10264
10265
10266
10267
10268
10269
10270
10271
10272
10273
10274
10275
10276
10277
10278
10279
10280
10281
10282
10283
10284
10285
10286
10287
10288
10289
10290
10291
10292
10293
10294
10295
10296
10297
10298
10299
10300
10301
10302
10303
10304
10305
10306
10307
10308
10309
10310
10311
10312
10313
10314
10315
10316
|
The Project Gutenberg EBook of The Triflers, by Frederick Orin Bartlett
This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
Title: The Triflers
Author: Frederick Orin Bartlett
Release Date: January 27, 2007 [EBook #20458]
Language: English
Character set encoding: ASCII
*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE TRIFLERS ***
Produced by Al Haines
[Frontispiece: A new tenderness swept over her]
THE TRIFLERS
BY
FREDERICK ORIN BARTLETT
_With Illustrations by_
_George Ellis Wolfe_
TORONTO
THOMAS ALLEN
BOSTON AND NEW YORK
HOUGHTON MIFFLIN COMPANY
1917
COPYRIGHT, 1916, BY EVERY WEEK CORPORATION
COPYRIGHT, 1917, BY FREDERICK ORIN BARTLETT
ALL RIGHTS RESERVED
_Published March 1917_
TO
ANN AND KENT
CONTENTS
I. THE TROUBLE WITH MONTE
II. THE TROUBLE WITH MARJORY
III. A SUMMONS
IV. A PROPOSAL
V. PISTOLS
VI. GENDARMES AND ETHER
VII. THE ADVANTAGES OF BEING SHOT
VIII. DRAWBACKS OF RECOVERY
IX. BLUE AND GOLD
X. THE AFFAIR AT MAXIM'S
XI. A CANCELED RESERVATION
XII. A WEDDING JOURNEY
XIII. A WEDDING JOURNEY (_continued_)
XIV. THE BRIDE RUNS AWAY
XV. IN THE DARK
XVI. A WALK ON THE QUAY
XVII. JUST MONTE
XVIII. PETER
XIX. AN EXPLANATION
XX. PAYING LIKE A MAN
XXI. BACK TO SCHEDULE
XXII. A CONFESSION
XXIII. LETTERS
XXIV. THE BLIND SEE
XXV. SO LONG
XXVI. FREEDOM
XXVII. WAR
XXVIII. THE CORNICE ROAD
XXIX. BENEATH THE STARS
ILLUSTRATIONS
LOI
A NEW TENDERNESS SWEPT OVER HER . . . _Frontispiece_
"WE'RE TO BE MARRIED TO-MORROW?"
MONSIEUR'S EYES WARMED AS HE SLIPPED THE WRAP OVER MADAME'S SHOULDERS
"BECAUSE HE LOVES YOU," BREATHED BEATRICE
"DID N'T BEATRICE TELL ME YOU REGISTERED HERE WITH YOUR WIFE?"
"PETER!" SHE CRIED, FALLING BACK A STEP
"BUT, O GOD, IF HE WOULD COME!"
_From drawings by George E. Wolfe_
THE TRIFLERS
CHAPTER I
THE TROUBLE WITH MONTE
For a man to keep himself consistently amused for ten years after his
graduation from college, even with an inheritance to furnish ample
financial assistance, suggests a certain quality of genius. This much
Monte Covington had accomplished--accomplished, furthermore, without
placing himself under obligations of any sort to the opposite sex. He
left no trail of broken hearts in his wake. If some of the younger
sisters of the big sisters took the liberty of falling in love with him
secretly and in the privacy of their chambers, that was no fault of
his, and did neither them nor him the slightest harm.
Such minor complications could not very well be avoided, because,
discreet as Monte tried to be, it was not possible for him to deny
certain patent facts, to wit: that he was a Covington of Philadelphia;
that he was six feet tall and light-haired; that he had wonderfully
decent blue eyes; that he had a straight nose; that he had the firm
mouth and jaws of an Arctic explorer; that he had more money than he
knew what to do with; and that he was just old enough to be known as a
bachelor without in the slightest looking like one.
At the point where the older sisters gave him up as hopeless, he came
as a sort of challenge to the younger.
This might have proved dangerous for him had it not been for his
schedule, which did not leave him very long in any one place and which
kept him always pretty well occupied. By spending his winters at his
New York club until after the holidays; then journeying to Switzerland
for the winter sports; then to Nice for tennis; then to Paris for a
month of gay spring and the Grand Prix; and so over to England for a
few days in London and a month of golf along the coast--he was able to
come back refreshed to his camp in the Adirondacks, there to fish until
it was time to return to Cambridge for the football season, where he
found himself still useful as a coach in the art of drop-kicking.
The fact that he could get into his old football togs without letting
out any strings or pulling any in, and could even come through an
occasional scrimmage without losing his breath, was proof that he kept
himself in good condition.
It was not until his eleventh trip that Monte became aware of certain
symptoms which seemed to hint that even as pleasant a cycle as his
could not be pursued indefinitely. At Davos he first noted a change.
Though he took the curves in the long run with a daring that proved his
eye to be as quick and his nerves as steady as ever, he was restless.
Later, when he came to Nice, it was with a listlessness foreign to him.
In the first place, he missed Edhart, the old maitre d'hotel who for a
decade had catered to his primitive American tastes in the matter of
foodstuffs with as much enthusiasm as if he had been a Parisian epicure.
The passing of Edhart did more to call Monte's attention to the fact
that in his own life a decade had also passed than anything else could
possibly have done. Between birthdays there is only the lapse each
time of a year; but between the coming and going of the maitre d'hotel
there was a period of ten years, which with his disappearance seemed to
vanish. Monte was twenty-two when he first came to Nice, and now he
was thirty-two. He became thirty-two the moment he was forced to point
out to the new management his own particular table in the corner, and
to explain that, however barbarous the custom might appear, he always
had for breakfast either a mutton chop or a beefsteak. Edhart had made
him believe, even to last year, that in this matter and a hundred
others he was merely expressing the light preferences of a young man.
Now, because he was obliged to emphasize his wishes by explicit orders,
they became the definite likes and dislikes of a man of middle age.
For relief Monte turned to the tennis courts, and played so much in the
next week that he went stale and in the club tournament put up the
worst game of his life. That evening, in disgust, he boarded the train
for Monte Carlo, and before eleven o'clock had lost five thousand
francs at roulette--which was more than even he could afford for an
evening's entertainment that did not entertain. Without waiting for
the croupier to rake in his last note, Monte hurried out and, to clear
his head, walked all the way back to Nice along the Cornice Road.
Above him, the mountains; below, the blue Mediterranean; while the road
hung suspended between them like a silver ribbon. Yet even here he did
not find content.
Monte visited the rooms every evening for the next three days; but, as
he did not play again and found there nothing more interesting than the
faces, or their counterparts, which he had seen for the past ten years,
the programme grew stupid.
So, really, he had no alternative but Paris, although it was several
weeks ahead of his schedule. As a matter of fact, it was several weeks
too early. The city was not quite ready for him. The trees in the
Champs Elysees were in much the condition of a lady half an hour before
an expected caller. The broad vista to the triumphal arches was merely
the setting for a few nurses and their charges. The little iron tables
were so deserted that they remained merely little iron tables.
Of course the boulevards were as always; but after a night or two
before the Cafe de la Paix he had enough. Even with fifty thousand
people passing in review before him, he was not as amused as he should
have been. He sipped his black coffee as drowsily as an old man.
In an effort to rouse himself, he resolved to visit the cafes upon
Montmartre, which he had outgrown many years ago. That night he
climbed the narrow stairs to l'Abbaye. It was exactly as it had
been--a square room bounded by long seats before tables. Some two
dozen young ladies of various nationalities wandered about the center
of the room, trying their best, but with manifest effort, to keep pace
to the frenzied music of an orchestra paid to keep frenzied. A
half-dozen of the ladies pounced upon Monte as he sat alone, and he
gladly turned over to them the wine he purchased as the price of
admission. Yvonne, she with the languid Egyptian eyes, tried to rouse
the big American. Was it that he was bored? Possibly it was that,
Monte admitted. Then another bottle of wine was the proper thing. So
he ordered another bottle, and to the toast Yvonne proposed, raised his
glass. But the wine did him no good, and the music did him no good,
and Yvonne did him no good. The place had gone flat. Whatever he
needed, it was nothing l'Abbaye had to offer.
Covington went out into the night again, and, though the music from a
dozen other cafes called him to come in and forget, he continued down
the hill to the boulevard, deaf to the gay entreaties of the whole
city. It was clear that he was out of tune with Paris.
As he came into the Place de l'Opera he ran into the crowd pouring from
the big gray opera house, an eager, voluble crowd that jostled him
about as if he were an intruder. They had been warmed by fine music
and stirred by the great passions of this mimic world, so that the
women clung more tightly to the arms of their escorts.
Covington, who had fallen back a little to watch them pass, felt
strangely isolated. They hurried on without seeing him, as if he were
merely some spectral bystander. Yet the significant fact was not that
a thousand strangers should pass him without being aware of his
presence, but that he himself should notice their indifference. It was
not like him.
Ordinarily it was exactly what he would desire. But to-night he was in
an unusual mood--a mood that was the culmination of a restlessness
covering an entire month. But what the deuce was the name and cause of
it? He could no longer attribute it to the fact that he had gone stale
physically, because he had now had a rest of several weeks. It was not
that he was bored; those who are bored never stop to ask themselves why
they are bored or they would not be bored. It was not that he was
homesick, because, strictly speaking, he had no home. A home seems to
involve the female element and some degree of permanence. This unrest
was something new--something, apparently, that had to do vaguely with
the fact that he was thirty-two. If Edhart--
Impatiently he started again for his hotel. This confoundedly
good-natured, self-satisfied crowd moving in couples irritated him. At
that moment a tall, slender girl turned, hesitated, then started toward
him. He did not recognize her at first, but the mere fact that she
came toward him--that any one came toward him--quickened his pulse. It
brought him back instantly from the shadowy realm of specters to the
good old solid earth. It was he, Covington, who was standing there.
Then she raised her eyes--dark eyes deep as trout pools; steady,
confident, but rather sad eyes. They appeared to be puzzled by the
eagerness with which he stepped forward and grasped her hand.
"Marjory!" he exclaimed. "I did n't know you were in Paris!"
She smiled--a smile that extended no farther than the corners of her
perfect mouth.
"That's to excuse yourself for not looking me up, Monte?"
She had a full, clear voice. It was good to hear a voice that he could
recognize.
"No," he answered frankly. "That's honest. I thought you were
somewhere in Brittany. But are you bound anywhere in particular?"
"Only home."
"Still living on the Boulevard Saint-Germain?"
She nodded.
"Number forty-three?"
He was glad he was able to remember that number.
"Number sixty-four," she corrected.
They had been moving toward the Metro station, and here she paused.
"There is no need for you to come with me," she said. "But I'd like to
have you drop in for tea some afternoon--if you have time."
The strangers were still hurrying past him--to the north, the south,
the east, the west. Men and women were hurrying past, laughing, intent
upon themselves, each with some definite objective in mind. He himself
was able to smile with them now. Then she held out her gloved hand,
and he felt alone again.
"I may accompany you home, may I not?" he asked eagerly.
"If you wish."
Once again she raised her eyes with that expression of puzzled
interest. This was not like Monte. Of course he would accompany her
home, but that he should seem really to take pleasure in the
prospect--that was novel.
"Let me call a taxi," he said. "I'm never sure where these French
undergrounds are going to land me."
"They are much quicker," she suggested.
"There is no hurry," he answered.
With twenty-four hours a day on his hands, he was never in a hurry.
Instead of giving to the driver the number sixty-four Boulevard
Saint-Germain, he ordered him to forty-seven Rue Saint-Michel, which is
the Cafe d'Harcourt.
It had suddenly occurred to Monte what the trouble was with him. He
was lonesome.
CHAPTER II
THE TROUBLE WITH MARJORY
She was surprised when the car stopped before the cafe, and mildly
interested.
"Do you mind?" he asked.
"No, Monte."
She followed him through the smoke and chatter to one of the little
dining-rooms in the rear where the smoke and chatter were somewhat
subdued. There Henri removed their wraps with a look of frank
approval. It was rather an elaborate dinner that Monte ordered,
because he remembered for the first time that he had not yet dined this
evening. It was also a dinner of which he felt Edhart would thoroughly
approve, and that always was a satisfaction.
"Now," he said to the girl, as soon as Henri had left, "tell me about
yourself."
"You knew about Aunt Kitty?" she asked.
"No," he replied hesitatingly, with an uneasy feeling that it was one
of those things that he should know about.
"She was taken ill here in Paris in February, and died shortly after we
reached New York," she explained.
What Covington would have honestly liked to do was to congratulate her.
Stripping the situation of all sentimentalism, the naked truth remained
that she had for ten years given up her life utterly to her aunt--had
almost sold herself into slavery. Ostensibly this Aunt Kitty had taken
the girl to educate, although she had never forgiven her sister for
having married Stockton; had never forgiven her for having had this
child, which had cost her life; had never forgiven Stockton for losing
in business her sister's share of the Dolliver fortune.
Poor old Stockton--he had done his best, and the failure killed him.
It was Chic Warren who had told Covington the pitiful little tale.
Chic always spoke of the aunt as "the Vamp.," the abbreviation, as he
explained, being solely out of respect to her gray hairs. Marjory had
received her education, to be sure; but she had paid for it in the only
coin she had--the best of her young self from seventeen to
twenty-seven. The only concession the aunt had ever made was to allow
her niece to study art in Paris this last year.
"I have n't heard from Chic since Christmas," he explained; "so I did
n't know. Then you are back here in Paris--alone?"
Unconsciously he had emphasized that word "alone."
"Why not?" she asked directly.
She held her head a bit high, as if in challenge.
"Nothing; only--"
He did not finish. He could not very well tell her that she was too
confoundedly good-looking to be alone in Paris. Yet that was what he
thought, in spite of his belief that, of all the women he had ever met,
she was the best able to be alone anywhere. There were times when he
had sat beside her, not feeling sure that he was in the same room with
her: it was as if he were looking at her through plate-glass.
To-night, however, it was not like that. She looked like a younger
sister of herself.
"Still painting?" he inquired.
"As much as they will let me."
"They?"
She leaned forward with a frown, folding her arms upon the table.
"What is the matter with men?" she demanded. "Why won't they believe a
woman when she tells the truth?"
He was somewhat startled by the question, and by her earnestness.
"Just what do you mean?"
"Why can't they leave a woman alone?"
It was clear that he was not expected to answer, and so, with her
permission, he lighted a cigarette and waited with considerable
interest for her to go on.
For a moment she studied him, as if wondering if it were worth while to
continue her confidence. Her acquaintance with Monte dated back ten
years, when, as a girl of seventeen, she had met him on one of his rare
week-end visits to the Warrens. She was then fresh from finishing
school, and he was one of the very few men she had been allowed to meet
in any more intimate way than merely to shake hands with in passing.
She had been tremendously impressed. She could smile at it now. But,
really, she had been like one of the younger sisters, and for a year or
so after that he had been to her a sort of vague knight errant.
It was three years ago that her aunt had begun to travel with her, and
after that she had seen Monte not oftener than once or twice a year,
and then for scarcely more than a greeting and good-bye. On the other
hand, Mrs. Warren had always talked and written to her a great deal
about him. Chic and he had been roommates in college, and ever since
had kept in close touch with each other by letter. The trivial gossip
of Monte's life had always been passed on to Marjory, so that she had
really for these last few years been following his movements and
adventures month by month, until she felt in almost as intimate contact
with him as with the Warrens. She had reason to think that, in turn,
her movements were retailed to Monte. The design was obvious--and
amusing.
On the whole, Marjory concluded that it was not especially worth while
to burden him with her troubles; and yet, it was just because of that
she was inclined to continue--in, however, a less serious mood. Monte
had so few burdens of his own. That odd little smile--scarcely more
than the ghost of a smile--returned to the corners of her mouth.
"To-night," she said, "I ran away from Teddy Hamilton, for all the
world like a heroine of melodrama. Do you know Teddy?"
"Yes," he answered slowly, "I do."
He refrained with difficulty from voicing his opinion of the man, which
he could have put into three words--"the little beast." But how did it
happen that she, of all women, had been thrown into contact with this
pale-faced Don Juan of the New York music-halls and Paris cafes?
"I lent Marie, my maid, one of my new hats and a heavy veil," she went
on. "She came out and stepped into a taxi, with instructions to keep
driving in a circle of a mile. Teddy followed in another machine.
And"--she paused to look up and smile--"for all I know, he may still be
following her round and round. I came on to the opera."
"Kind of tough on Marie," he commented, with his blue eyes reflecting a
hearty relish of the situation.
"Marie will undoubtedly enjoy a nap," she said. "As for Teddy--well,
he is generally out of funds, so I hope he may get into difficulties
with the driver."
"He won't," declared Monte. "He'll probably end by borrowing a
_pour-boire_ of the driver."
She nodded.
"That is possible. He is very clever."
"The fact that he is still out of jail--" began Monte.
Then he checked himself. He was not a man to talk about other
men--even about one so little of a man as Teddy Hamilton.
"Tell me what you know of him," she requested.
"I'd rather not," he answered.
"Is he as bad as that?" she queried thoughtfully. "But what I don't
understand is why--why, then, he can sing like a white-robed choir-boy."
Monte looked serious.
"I've heard him," he admitted. "But it was generally after he had been
sipping absinthe rather heavily. His specialty is 'The Rosary.'"
"And the barcarole from the 'Contes d'Hoffmann.'"
"And little Spanish serenades," he added.
"But if he's all bad inside?"
She raised those deep, dark eyes as a child might. She had been for
ten years like one in a convent.
Covington shook his head.
"I can't explain it," he said. "Perhaps, in a way, it's because of
that--because of the contrast. But I 've heard him do it. I 've heard
him make a room full of those girls on Montmartre stop their dancing
and gulp hard. But where--"
"Did I meet him?" she finished. "It was on the boat coming over this
last time. You see-- I 'm talking a great deal about myself."
"Please go on."
He had forgotten that her face was so young. The true lines of her
features were scarcely more than sketched in, though that much had been
done with a sure hand. Whatever was to come, he thought, must be
added. There would be need of few erasures. Up to a certain point it
was the face of any of those young women of gentle breeding that he met
when at home--the inheritance of the best of many generations.
As she was sitting now, her head slightly turned, the arch of one brow
blended in a perfect curve into her straight, thin nose. But the mouth
and chin--they were firmer than one might have expected. If, not
knowing her, he had seen her driving in the Bois or upon Rotten Row, he
would have been curious about her title. It had always seemed to him
that she should by rights have been Her Royal Highness Something or
Other.
This was due partly to a certain air of serene security and a certain
aloofness that characterized her. He felt it to a lesser degree
to-night than ever before, but he made no mistake. He might be
permitted to admire those features as one admires a beautiful portrait,
but somewhere a barrier existed. There are faces that reflect the
soul; there are faces that hide the soul.
"Please go on," he repeated, as she still hesitated.
She was trying to explain why it was that she was tempted at all to
talk about herself to-night. Perhaps it was because she had been so
long silent--for many years silent. Perhaps it was because Monte was
so very impersonal that it was a good deal like talking out loud to
herself, with the advantage of being able to do this without wondering
if she were losing her wits. Then, too, after Teddy, Monte's
straight-seeing blue eyes freshened her thoughts like a clean north
wind. She always spoke of Monte as the most American man she knew; and
by that she meant something direct and honest--something four-square.
"I met Teddy on the boat," she resumed. "I was traveling alone
because--well, just because I wanted to be alone. You know, Aunt Kitty
was very good to me, but I'd been with her every minute for more than
ten years, and so I wanted to be by myself a little while. Right after
she died, I went down to the farm--her farm in Connecticut--and thought
I could be alone there. But--she left me a great deal of money, Monte."
Somehow, she could speak of such a thing to him. She was quite
matter-of-fact about it.
"It was a great deal too much," she went on. "I did n't mind myself,
because I could forget about it; but other people--they made me feel
like a rabbit running before the hounds. Some one put the will in the
papers, and people I'd never heard of began to write to me--dozens of
them. Then men with all sorts of schemes--charities and gold mines and
copper mines and oil wells and I don't know what all, came down there
to see me: down there to the little farm, where I wanted to be alone.
Of course, I could be out to them; but even then I was conscious that
they were around. Some of them even waited until I ventured from the
house, and waylaid me on the road.
"Then there were others--people I knew and could n't refuse to see
without being rude. I felt," she said, looking up at Monte, "as if the
world of people had suddenly all turned into men, and that they were
hunting me. I could n't get away from them without locking myself up,
and that was just the thing I did n't want to do. In a way, I 'd been
locked up all my life. So I just packed my things and took the steamer
without telling any one but my lawyer where I was going."
"It's too bad they wouldn't let you alone," said Monte.
"It was like an evil dream," she said. "I did n't know men were like
that."
Monte frowned.
Of course, that is just what would happen to a young woman as
good-looking as she, suddenly left alone with a fortune. Her name,
without a doubt, was on the mailing list of every promoter from New
York to San Francisco. It was also undoubtedly upon the list of every
man and woman who could presume an acquaintance with her. She had
become fair game.
"Then on the boat I met Teddy," she went on. "It was difficult not to
meet him."
He nodded.
"I did n't mind so much at first; he was interesting."
"Yes, he's that," admitted Monte.
"And he was very pleasant until--he began to make love to me."
If Monte knew Teddy Hamilton, this happened about the third day.
"That was very annoying," she said reminiscently. "It was annoying,
not only because of Teddy, but in itself. In some ways he did it very
nicely--especially when he sang in the moonlight. I suppose it was my
fault that I gave him the opportunity. I could have kept myself in my
stateroom, or I could have played bridge with the elderly ladies in the
cabin. But, you see, that's what Aunty always made me do, and I did
want to get out. I did enjoy Teddy up to that point. But I did not
want to fall in love with him, or with any one else. I suppose I 'm
too selfish--too utterly and completely selfish."
"To--er--to fall in love?" he questioned.
"Yes. Oh, as long as I'm making you my father confessor, I may as well
be thorough." She smiled.
Monte leaned forward with sudden interest. Here was a question that at
odd moments had disturbed his own peace of mind. It was Chic Warren
who had first told him that in remaining a bachelor he was leading an
utterly selfish life.
"Does a distaste for falling in love necessarily go back to
selfishness?" he asked. "Is n't it sometimes merely a matter of
temperament?"
"And temperament," she asked, "is what?"
That was altogether too abstract a problem for Monte to discuss. Yet
he had his own ideas.
"It's the way you're made," he suggested.
"I doubt it, Monte," she answered. "I think it's rather the way you
make yourself; because I imagine that, to start with, we are all made a
good deal alike. It's just what you 'd rather do."
"And you'd rather paint?"
She considered a moment. It was as if she were trying at this time to
be very honest with herself.
"I'd rather be free to paint or not," she declared. "While Aunty was
alive, to paint seemed to be the only way to be free. It gave me the
excuse for coming here, for getting away a few hours a day. Now--well,
just to be free seems enough. I don't suppose a man knows how a woman
hungers for that--for just sheer, elemental freedom."
He did not. He supposed that freedom was what women enjoyed from
birth--like queens. He supposed they even had especial opportunities
in that direction, and that most men were in the nature of being their
humble servitors.
"It is n't that I want to do anything especially proper or improper,"
she hastened to assure him. "I have n't either the cravings or the
ambitions of the new woman. That, again, is where I 'm selfish. I'd
like to be"--she spoke hesitatingly--"I'd like to be just like you,
Monte."
"Like me?" he exclaimed in surprise.
"Free to do just what I want to do--nothing particularly good, nothing
particularly bad; free to go here or go there; free to live my own
life; free to be free."
"Well," he asked, "what's to prevent?"
"Teddy Hamilton--and the others," she answered. "In a way, they take
the place of Aunty. They won't let me alone. They won't believe me
when I tell them I don't want them around. They seem to assume that,
just because I'm not married-- Oh, they are stupid, Monte!"
Henri, who had been stealing in with course after course, refilled the
glasses. He smiled discreetly as he saw her earnest face.
"What you need," suggested Monte, "is a sort of chaperon or secretary."
She shook her head.
"Would you like one yourself?" she demanded.
"It would be a good deal of a nuisance," he admitted; "but, after all--"
"I won't have it!" she burst out. "It would spoil everything. It
would be like building one's own jail and employing one's own jailer.
I could n't stand that. I 'd rather be annoyed as I am than be annoyed
by a chaperon."
She was silent a moment, and then she exclaimed:
"Why, I'd almost rather marry Teddy! I'd feel freer--honestly, I think
I 'd feel freer with a husband than a chaperon."
"Oh, see here!" protested Monte. "You must n't do that."
"I don't propose to," she answered quietly.
"Then," he said, "the only thing left is to go away where Teddy and the
others can't find you."
"Where?" she asked with interest.
"There are lots of little villages in Switzerland."
She shook her head.
"And along the Riviera."
"I love the little villages," she replied. "I love them here and at
home. But it's no use."
She smiled. There was something pathetic about that smile--something
that made Covington's arm muscles twitch.
"I should n't even have the aid of the taxis in the little villages,"
she said.
Monte leaned back.
"If they only had here in Paris a force of good, honest Irish cops
instead of these confounded gendarmes," he mused.
She looked her astonishment at the irrelevant observation.
"You see," he explained, "it might be possible then to lay for Teddy H.
some evening and--argue with him."
"It's nice of you, Monte, to think of that," she murmured.
Monte was nice in a good many ways.
"The trouble is, they lack sentiment, these gendarmes," he concluded.
"They are altogether too law-abiding."
CHAPTER III
A SUMMONS
Monte himself had sometimes been accused of lacking sentiment; and yet,
the very first thing he did when starting for his walk the next morning
was to order a large bunch of violets to be sent to number sixty-four
Boulevard Saint-Germain. Then, at a somewhat faster pace than usual,
he followed the river to the Jardin des Tuileries, and crossed there to
the Avenue des Champs Elysees into the Bois.
He walked as confidently as if overnight his schedule had again been
put in good running order; for, overnight, spring had come, and that
was what his schedule called for in Paris. The buds, which until now
had hesitated to unfold, trembled forth almost before his eyes under
the influence of a sun that this morning blazed in a turquoise sky.
Perhaps they had hurried a trifle to overtake Monte.
With his shoulders well back, filling his lungs deep with the perfumed
morning air, he swung along with a hearty, self-confident stride that
caused many a little nursemaid to turn and look at him again.
He had sent her violets; and yet, except for the fact that he had never
before sent her flowers, he could not rightly be accused of
sentimentalism. He had acted on the spur of the moment, remembering
only the sad, wistful smile with which she had bade him good-night when
she stood at the door of the _pension_. Or perhaps he had been
prompted by the fact that she was in Paris alone.
Until now it had never been possible to dissociate her completely from
Aunt Kitty. Marjory had never had a separate existence of her own. To
a great many people she had never been known except as Miss Dolliver's
charming niece, although to Monte she had been known more particularly
as a young friend of the Warrens. But, even in this more intimate
capacity, he had always been relieved of any sense of responsibility
because of this aunt. Wherever he met her, there was never any
occasion for him to put himself out to be nice to her, because it was
always understood that she could never leave Aunt Kitty even for an
evening. This gave him a certain sense of security. With her he never
was forced to consider either the present or the future.
Last night it had been almost like meeting her for the first time
alone. It was as if in all these years he had known her only through
her photograph, as one knows friends of one's friends about whom one
has for long heard a great deal, without ever meeting them face to
face. From the moment he first saw her in the Place de l'Opera she had
made him conscious of her as, in another way, he had always been
conscious of Edhart. The latter, until his death, had always remained
in Monte's outer consciousness like a fixed point. Because he was so
permanent, so unchanging, he dominated the rest of Monte's schedule as
the north star does the mariner's course.
Each year began when Edhart bade him a smiling au revoir at the door of
the Hotel des Roses; and that same year did not end, but began again,
when the matter of ten or eleven months later Monte found Edhart still
at the door to greet him. So it was always possible, the year round,
to think of Edhart as ever standing by the door smilingly awaiting him.
This was very pleasant, and prevented Monte from getting really
lonesome, and consequently from getting old. It was only in the last
few weeks that he fully realized all that Edhart had done for him.
It was, in some ways, as if Edhart had come back to life again in
Marjory. He had felt it the moment she had smilingly confided in him;
he felt it still more when, after she bade him good-night, he had
turned back into the city, not feeling alone any more. Now it was as
if he were indebted to her for this morning walk, and for restoring to
him his springtime Paris. It was for these things that he had sent her
violets--because she had made him comfortable again. So, after all,
his act had been one, not of sentimentalism, but of just plain
gratitude.
Monte's objection to sentiment was not based upon any of the modern
schools of philosophy, which deplore it as a weakness. He took his
stand upon much simpler grounds: that, as far as he had been able to
observe, it did not make for content. It had been his fate to be
thrown in contact with a good deal of it in its most acute stages,
because the route he followed was unhappily the route also followed by
those upon their honeymoon. If what he observed was sentiment at its
zenith, then he did not care for it. Bridegrooms made the poorest sort
of traveling companions; and that, after all, was the supreme test of
men. They appeared restless, dazed, and were continually looking at
their watches. Few of them were able to talk intelligently or to play
a decent game of bridge.
Perhaps, too, he had been unfortunate in the result of his observations
of the same passion in its later stages; but it is certain that those
were not inspiring, either. Chic Warren was an exception. He seemed
fairly happy and normal, but Covington would never forget the night he
spent there when Chic, Junior had the whooping-cough. He walked by
Chic's side up and down the hall, up and down the hall, up and down the
hall, with Chic a ghastly white and the sweat standing in beads upon
his forehead. His own throat had tightened and he grew weak in the
knees every time the rubber-soled nurse stole into sight. Every now
and then he heard that gasping cough, and felt the spasmodic grip of
Chic's fingers upon his arm. It was terrible; for weeks afterward
Covington heard that cough.
At the end of an hour Covington turned back, wheeling like a soldier on
parade. There had never seemed to him any reason why, when a man was
entirely comfortable, as he was, he should take the risk of a change.
He had told Chic as much when sometimes the latter, over a pipe, had
introduced the subject. The last time, Chic had gone a little farther
than usual.
"But, man alive!" Chic had exclaimed. "A day will come when you'll be
sorry."
"I don't believe it," Monte answered.
Yet it was only yesterday that he had wandered over half Paris in
search of something to bring his schedule back to normal. And he had
found it--in front of the Opera House at eleven o'clock at night.
Monte strode into his hotel with a snap that made the little clerk
glance up in surprise.
"Any mail for me?" he inquired.
"A telephone message, monsieur."
He handed Monte an envelope. It was not often that he received
telephone messages. It read as follows:--
Can't you come over? Teddy was very angry about the taxi, and I think
I shall leave Paris tonight. The flowers were beautiful.
Monte felt his breath coming fast.
"How long has this been waiting for me?" he demanded.
"A half-hour, monsieur."
He hurried out the door and into a taxi.
"Sixty-four Boulevard Saint-Germain--and hurry."
Leaving Paris? She had no right to do that. Edhart never left. That
was the beauty of Edhart--that he remained stationary, so that he could
always be found. He was quite sure that Edhart was too considerate
even to die, could he have avoided it. Now Marjory was proposing to go
and leave him here alone. He could not allow that. It was too early
to quit Paris, anyway. It was only the first day of spring!
She came down into the gloomy _pension_ reception-room looking as if
she had already begun to assist Marie with the packing. Her hair had
become loosened, and escaped in several places in black curls that gave
her a distinctly girlish appearance. There was more color, too, in her
cheeks; but it was the flush of excitement rather than the honest red
that colored his own cheeks. She looked tired and discouraged. She
sank into a chair.
"It was good of you to come, Monte," she said. "But I don't know why I
should bother you with my affairs. Only--he was so disagreeable. He
frightened me, for a moment."
"What did he do?" demanded Monte.
"He came here early, and when Marie told him I was out he said he would
wait until I came back. So he sat down--right here. Then, every five
minutes, he called Madame Courcy and sent her up with a note. I was
afraid of a scene, because madame spoke of sending for the gendarmes."
"Why didn't you let her?"
"That would have made still more of a scene."
She was speaking in a weary, emotionless voice, like one who is very
tired.
"So I came down and saw him," she said. "He was very melodramatic."
It seemed difficult for her to go on.
"Absinthe?" he questioned.
"I don't know. He wanted me to marry him at once. He drew a revolver
and threatened to shoot himself--threatened to shoot me."
Monte clenched his fists.
"Good Lord!" he said softly. "That is going a bit far."
"Is it so men act--when they are in love?" she asked.
Monte started.
"I don't know. If it is, then they ought to be put in jail."
"If it is, it is most unpleasant," she said; "and I can't stand it,
Monte. There is no reason why I should, is there?"
"No: if you can avoid it."
"That's the trouble," she frowned. "I've been quite frank with him. I
told him that I did not want to marry him. I've told him that I could
not conceive of any possible circumstances under which I would marry
him. I've told him that in French and I 've told him that in English,
and he won't believe me."
"The cad!" exclaimed Monte.
"It does n't seem fair," she mused. "The only thing I ask for is to be
allowed to lead my life undisturbed, and he won't let me. There are
others, too. I had five letters this morning. So all I can do is to
run away again."
"To where?" asked Monte.
"You spoke of the little villages along the Riviera."
"Yes," he nodded. "There is the village of Etois--back in the
mountains."
"Then I might go there. _C'est tout egal_."
She shrugged her shoulders. (She had beautiful shoulders.)
"But look here. Supposing the--this Hamilton should follow you there?"
"Then I must move again."
Monte paced the room. Obviously this was not right. There was no
reason why she should be continually hounded. Yet there seemed to be
no way to prevent it.
He stopped in front of her. She glanced up--her eyes, even now, calm
and deep as trout pools.
"I'll get hold of the beggar to-day," he said grimly.
She shook her head.
"Please not."
"But he's the one who must go away. If I could have a few minutes with
him alone, I think perhaps I could make him see that."
"Please not," she repeated.
"What's the harm?"
"I don't think it would be safe--for either of you."
She raised her eyes as she said that, and for a moment Monte was held
by them. Then she rose.
"After all, it's too bad for me to inflict my troubles on you," she
said.
"I don't mind," he answered quickly. "Only--hang it all, there does
n't seem to be anything I can do!"
"I guess there is n't anything any one can do," she replied helplessly.
"So you're going away?"
"To-night," she nodded.
"To Etois?"
"Perhaps. Perhaps to India. Perhaps to Japan."
It was the indefiniteness that Monte did not relish. Even as she
spoke, it was as if she began to disappear; and for a second he felt
again the full weight of his thirty-two years. He was perfectly
certain that the moment she went he was going to feel alone--more alone
than he had ever felt in his life.
It was in the nature of a hunch. Within twenty-four hours he would be
wandering over Paris as he had wandered yesterday. That would not do
at all. Of course, he could pack up and go on to England, but at the
moment he felt that it would be even worse there, where all the world
spoke English.
"Suppose I order young Hamilton to leave Paris?" he asked.
"But what right have you to order him to leave Paris?"
"Well, I can tell him he is annoying you and that I won't stand for
it," he declared.
For a second her eyes grew mellow; for a second a more natural red
flushed her cheeks.
"If you were only my big brother, now," she breathed.
Monte saw the point. His own cheeks turned a red to match hers.
"You mean he'll ask--what business you are of mine?"
"Yes."
And Monte would have no answer. He realized that. As a friend he had,
of course, certain rights; but they were distinctly limited. It was,
for instance, no business of his whether she went to Etois or Japan or
India. By no stretch of the imagination could he make it his
business--though it affected his whole schedule, though it affected her
whole life. As a friend he would be justified, perhaps, in throwing
young Hamilton out of the door if he happened to be around when the man
was actually annoying her; but there was no way in which he could guard
her against such annoyances in the future. He had no authority that
extended beyond the moment; nor was it possible for Marjory herself to
give him that authority. Young Hamilton, if he chose, could harry her
around the world, and it would be none of Monte's business.
There was something wrong with a situation of that sort. If he had
only been born her brother or father, or even a first cousin, then it
might be possible to do something, because, if necessary, he could
remain always at hand. He wondered vaguely if there were not some law
that would make him a first cousin. He was on the point of suggesting
it when a bell jangled solemnly in the hall.
The girl clutched his arm.
"I'm afraid he's come again," she gasped.
Monte threw back his shoulders.
"Fine," he smiled. "It could n't be better."
"But I don't want to see him! I won't see him!"
"There is n't the slightest need in the world of it," he nodded. "You
go upstairs, and I'll see him."
But, clinging to his arm, she drew him into the hall and toward the
stairs. The bell rang again--impatiently.
"Come," she insisted.
He tried to calm her.
"Steady! Steady! I promise you I won't make a scene."
"But he will. Oh, you don't know him. I won't have it. Do you hear?
I won't have it."
To Madame Courcy, who appeared, she whispered:--
"Tell him I refuse to see him again. Tell him you will call the
gendarmes."
"It seems so foolish to call in those fellows when the whole thing
might be settled quietly right now," pleaded Monte.
He turned eagerly toward the door.
"If you don't come away, Monte," she said quietly, "I won't ever send
for you again."
Reluctantly he followed her up the stairs as the bell jangled harshly,
wildly.
CHAPTER IV
A PROPOSAL
Dejectedly, Monte seated himself upon a trunk in the midst of a scene
of fluffy chaos. Marie had swooped in from the next room, seized one
armful, and returned in consternation as her mistress stood poised at
the threshold. Then, with her face white, Marjory closed the door and
locked it.
"He's down there," she informed Monte.
Monte glanced at his watch.
"It's quarter of twelve," he announced. "I'll give him until twelve to
leave."
Marjory crossed to the window and stared out at the sun-lighted street.
It was very beautiful out there--very warm and gentle and peaceful.
And at her back all this turmoil. Once again the unspoken cry that
sprang to her lips was just this:--
"It is n't fair--it is n't fair!"
For ten years she had surrendered herself to Aunt Kitty--surrendered
utterly the deep, budding years of her young womanhood. To the last
minute she had paid her obligations in full. Then, at the moment she
had been about to spread her long-folded wings and soar into the
sunshine, this other complication had come. When the lawyer informed
her of the fortune that was hers, she had caught her breath. It
spelled freedom. Yet she asked for so little--for neither luxuries nor
vanities; for just the privilege of leading for a space her own life,
undisturbed by any responsibility.
Selfish? Yes. But she had a right to be selfish for a little. She
had answered that question when Peter Noyes--Monte reminded her in many
ways of Peter--had come down to her farm in Littlefield one Sunday.
She had seen more of Peter than of any other man, and knew him to be
honest. He had been very gentle with her, and very considerate; but
she knew what was in his heart, so she had put the question to herself
then and there. If she chose to follow the road to which he silently
beckoned--the road to all those wonderful hopes that had surged in upon
her at eighteen--she had only to nod. If she had let herself go, she
could have loved Peter. Then--she drew back at so surrendering
herself. It meant a new set of self-sacrifices. It meant, however
hallowed, a new prison. Because, if she loved, she would love hard.
Monte glanced at his watch again.
"Five minutes gone! Have you seen him leave?"
"No, Monte," she answered.
He folded his arms resignedly.
"You don't really mean to act against my wishes, Monte?"
"If that's the only way of getting rid of him," he answered coolly.
"But don't you see--don't you understand that you will only make a
scandal of it?" she said.
"What do you mean?"
"If he makes a scene it will be in the papers, and then--oh, well, they
will ask by what right--"
"I'd answer I was simply ridding you of a crazy man."
"They would smile. Oh, I know them! Here in Paris they won't believe
that a woman who is n't married--"
She stopped abruptly.
Monte's brows came together.
Here was the same situation that had confronted him a few minutes
before. Not only had he no right, but if he assumed a right his claim
might be misinterpreted. Undoubtedly Teddy himself would be the first
to misinterpret it. It would be impossible for a man of his sort to
think in any other direction. And then--well, such stories were easier
to start than to stop.
Monte's lips came together. As far as he himself was concerned, he was
willing to take the risk; but the risk was not his to take. As long as
he found himself unable to devise any scheme by which he could, even
technically, make himself over into her father, her brother, or even a
first cousin, there appeared no possible way in which he could assume
the right that would not make it a risk.
Except one way.
Here Monte caught his breath.
There was just one relationship open to him that would bestow upon him
automatically the undeniable right to say to Teddy Hamilton anything
that might occur to him--that would grant him fuller privileges, now
and for as long as the relationship was maintained, than even that of
blood.
To be sure, the idea was rather staggering. It was distinctly novel,
for one thing, and not at all in his line, for another. This, however,
was a crisis calling for staggering novelties if it could not be
handled in the ordinary way. Ten minutes had already passed.
Monte walked slowly to Marjory's side. She turned and met his eyes.
On the whole, he would have felt more comfortable had she continued
looking out the window.
"Marjory," he said--"Marjory, will you marry me?"
She shrank away.
"Monte!"
"I mean it," he said. "Will you marry me?"
After the first shock she seemed more hurt than anything.
"You are n't going to be like the others?" she pleaded.
"No," he assured her. "That's why--well, that's why I thought we might
arrange it."
"But I don't love you, Monte!" she exclaimed.
"Of course not."
"And you--you don't love me."
"That's it," he nodded eagerly.
"Yet you are asking me to marry you?"
"Just because of that," he said. "Don't you understand?"
She was trying hard to understand, because she had a great deal of
faith in Monte and because at this moment she needed him.
"I don't see why being engaged to a man you don't care about need
bother you at all," he ran on. "It's the caring that seems to make the
trouble--whether you 're engaged or not. I suppose that's what ails
Teddy."
She had been watching Monte's eyes; but she turned away for a second.
"Of course," he continued, "you can care--without caring too much.
Can't people care in just a friendly sort of way?"
"I should think so, Monte," she answered.
"Then why can't people become engaged--in just a friendly sort of way?"
"It would n't mean very much, would it?"
"Just enough," he said.
He held out his hand.
"Is it a bargain?"
She searched his eyes. They were clean and blue.
"It's so absurd, Monte!" she gasped.
"You can call me, to yourself, your secretary," he suggested.
"No--not that."
"Then," he said, "call me just a _camarade de voyage_."
Her eyes warmed a trifle.
"I'll keep on calling you just Monte," she whispered.
And she gave him her hand.
CHAPTER V
PISTOLS
Evidently young Hamilton did not hear Monte come down the stairs, for
he was sitting in a chair near the window, with his head in his hands,
and did not move even when Monte entered the room.
"Hello, Hamilton," said Covington.
Hamilton sprang to his feet--a shaking, ghastly remnant of a man. He
had grown thinner and paler than when Covington last saw him. But his
eyes--they held Covington for a moment. They burned in their hollow
sockets like two candles in a dark room.
"Covington!" gasped the man.
Then his eyes narrowed.
"What the devil you doing here?" he demanded.
"Sit down," suggested Monte. "I want to have a little talk with you."
It was physical weakness that forced Hamilton to obey.
Monte drew up a chair opposite him.
"Now," he said quietly, "tell me just what it is you want of Miss
Stockton."
"What business is that of yours?" demanded Hamilton nervously.
Monte was silent a moment. Here at the start was the question Marjory
had anticipated--the question that might have caused him some
embarrassment had it not been so adequately provided for in the last
few moments. As it was, he became conscious of a little glow of
satisfaction which moderated his feelings toward young Hamilton
considerably. He actually felt a certain amount of sympathy for him.
After all, the little beggar was in bad shape.
But, even now, there was no reason, just yet, why he should make him
his confidant. Secure in his position, he felt it was none of
Hamilton's business.
"Miss Stockton and I are old friends," he answered.
"Then--she has told you?"
"She gave me to believe you made a good deal of an ass of yourself this
morning," nodded Monte.
Hamilton sank back limply in his chair.
"I did," he groaned. "Oh, my God, I did!"
"All that business of waving a pistol--I did n't think you were that
much of a cub, Hamilton."
"She drove me mad. I did n't know what I was doing."
"In just what way do you blame her?" inquired Monte.
"She would n't believe me," exclaimed Hamilton. "I saw it in her eyes.
I could n't make her believe me."
"Believe what?"
Hamilton got to his feet and leaned against the wall. He was breathing
rapidly, like a man in a fever.
Monte studied him with a curious interest.
"That I love her," gasped Hamilton. "She thought I was lying. I could
n't make her believe it, I tell you! She just sat there and
smiled--not believing."
"Good Lord!" said Monte. "You don't mean that you really do love her?"
Hamilton sprang with what little strength there was in him.
"Damn you, Covington--what do you think?" he choked.
Monte caught the man by the arms and forced him again into his chair.
"Steady," he warned.
Exhausted by his exertion, Hamilton sat there panting for breath, his
eyes burning into Covington's.
"What I meant," said Monte, "was, do you love her with--with an
honest-to-God love?"
When Hamilton answered this time, Covington saw what Marjory meant when
she wondered how Hamilton could look like a white-robed choir-boy as he
sang to her. He had grown suddenly calm, and when he spoke the red
light in his eyes had turned to white.
"It's with all there is in me, Covington," he said.
The pity of it was, of course, that so little was left in him--that so
much had been wasted, so much soiled, in the last few years. The
wonder was that so much was left.
As Monte looked down at the man, he felt his own heart beating faster.
He felt several other things that left him none too comfortable. Again
that curious interest that made him want to listen, that held him with
a weird fascination.
"Tell me about it," said Covington.
Hamilton sat up with a start. He faced Covington as if searching his
soul.
"Do you believe me?" he demanded.
"Yes," answered Monte; "I think I do."
"Because--did you see a play in New York called 'Peter Grimm'?"
"I remember it," nodded Monte.
"It's been like that--like dying and coming back and trying to make
people hear, and not being able to. I made an ass of myself until I
met her. I know that. I'm not fit to be in the same room with her. I
know that you can say nothing too bad about me--up to the day I met
her. I would n't care what people said up to that day--if they'd only
believe the rest; if she'd only believe the rest. I think I could
stand it even if I knew she--she did not care for me--if only I could
make her understand how much she means to me."
Monte looked puzzled.
"Just what does she mean to you?" he asked.
"All that's left in life," answered Hamilton. "All that's left to work
for, to live for, to hope for. It's been like that ever since I saw
her on the boat. I was coming over here to go the old rounds, and
then--everything was changed. There was no place to go, after that,
except where she went. I counted the hours at night to the time when
the sun came up and I could see her again. I did n't begin to live
until then; the rest of the time I was only waiting to live. Every
time she came in sight it--it was as if I were resurrected, Covington;
as if in the mean while I'd been dead. I thought at first I had a
chance, and I planned to come back home with her to do things. I
wanted to do big things for her. I thought I had a chance all the
while, until she came here--until this morning. Then, when she only
smiled--well, I lost my head."
"What was the idea back of the gun?" asked Monte.
Hamilton answered without bravado.
"I meant to end it for both of us; but I lost my nerve."
"Good Lord! You would have gone as far as that?"
"Yes," answered Hamilton wearily. "But I'm glad I fell down."
Monte passed his hand over his forehead. He could not fully grasp the
meaning of a passion that led a man to such lengths as this. Why, the
man had proposed murder--murder and suicide; and all because of this
strange love of a woman. He had been driven stark raving mad because
of it. He sat there now before him, an odd combination of craven
weakness and giant strength because of it. In the face of such a
revelation, Covington felt petty; he felt negative.
Less than ten minutes ago he himself had looked into the same eyes that
had so stirred this man. He had seen nothing there particularly to
disturb any one. They were very beautiful eyes, and the woman back of
them was very beautiful. He had a feeling that, day in and day out for
a great many years, they would remain beautiful. They had helped him
last night to make the city his own; they had helped him this morning
to recover his balance; they helped him now to see straight again.
But, after all, it was arrant nonsense for Hamilton to act like this.
Admitting the man believed in himself,--and Covington believed that
much,--he was, after all, Teddy Hamilton. The fact remained, even as
he himself admitted, that he was not fit to be in the same room with
her. It was not possible for a man in a month to cleanse himself of
the accumulated mire of ten years.
Furthermore, that too was beside the point. The girl cared nothing
about him. She particularly desired not to care about him or any one
else. It was not consistent with her scheme of life. She had told him
as much. It was this that had made his own engagement to her possible.
Monte rose from his chair and paced the room a moment. If possible, he
wished to settle this matter once for all. On the whole, it was more
difficult than he had anticipated. When he came down he had intended
to dispose of it in five minutes. Suddenly he wheeled and faced
Hamilton.
"It seems to me," he said, "that if a man loved a woman,--really loved
her,--then one of the things he would be most anxious about would be to
make her happy. Are you with me on that?"
Hamilton raised his head.
"Yes," he answered.
"Then," continued Monte, "it does n't seem to me that you are going
about it in just the right way. Waving pistols and throwing fits--"
"I was mad, I tell you," Hamilton broke in.
"Admitting that," resumed Monte, "I should think the best thing you
could do would be to go away and sober up."
"Go away?"
"I would. I'd go a long way--to Japan or India."
The old mad light came back to Hamilton's eyes.
"Did she ask you to tell me that?"
"No," answered Monte; "it is my own idea. Because, you see, if you
don't go she'll have to."
"What do you mean?"
"Steady, now," warned Monte. "I mean just what I say. She can't stay
here and let you camp in her front hall. Even Madame Courcy won't
stand for that. So--why don't you get out, quietly and without any
confusion?"
"That's your own suggestion?" said Hamilton, tottering to his feet.
"Exactly."
"Then," said Hamilton, "I'll see you in hell first. It's no business
of yours, I say."
"But it is," said Monte.
"Tell me how it is," growled Hamilton.
"Why, you see," said Monte quietly, "Miss Stockton and I are engaged."
"You lie!" choked Hamilton. "You--"
Monte heard a deafening report, and felt a biting pain in his shoulder.
As he staggered back he saw a pistol smoking in Hamilton's hand.
Recovering, he threw himself forward on the man and bore him to the
floor.
It was no very difficult matter for Monte to wrest the revolver from
Hamilton's weak fingers, even with one arm hanging limp; but it was
quite a different proposition to quiet Madame Courcy and Marie, who
were screaming hysterically in the hall. Marjory, to be sure, was
splendid; but even she could do little with madame, who insisted that
some one had been murdered, even when it was quite obvious, with both
men alive, that this was a mistake. To make matters worse, she had
called up the police on the telephone, and at least a dozen gendarmes
were now on their way.
The pain in Monte's arm was acute, and it hung from his shoulder as
limply as an empty sleeve; but, fortunately, it was not bleeding a
great deal,--or at least it was not messing things up,--and he was
able, therefore, by always keeping his good arm toward the ladies, to
conceal from them this disagreeable consequence of Hamilton's rashness.
Hamilton himself had staggered to his feet, and, leaning against the
wall, was staring blankly at the confusion about him.
Monte turned to Marjory.
"Hurry out and get a taxi," he said. "We can't allow the man to be
arrested."
"He tried to shoot--himself?" she asked.
"I don't believe he knows what he tried to do. Hurry, please."
As she went out, he turned to Marie.
"Help madame into her room," he ordered.
Madame did not want to go; but Monte impatiently grasped one arm and
Marie the other, so madame went.
Then he came back to Hamilton.
"Madame has sent for the police. Do you understand?"
"Yes," Hamilton answered dully.
"And I have sent for a taxi. It depends on which gets here first
whether you go to jail or not," said Monte.
Then he sat down in a chair, because his knees were beginning to feel
weak.
Marjory was back in a minute, and when she came in Monte was on his
feet again.
"It's at the door," she said.
At the sound of her voice Hamilton seemed to revive; but Monte had him
instantly by the arm.
"Come on," he ordered.
He shoved the boy ahead a little as he passed Marjory, and turning,
drew the revolver from his pocket. He did not dare take it with him,
because he knew that in five minutes he would be unable to use it.
Hamilton, on the other hand, might not be. He shoved it into her hand.
"Take it upstairs and hide it," he said. "Be careful with it."
"You're coming back here?" she asked quickly.
She thought his cheeks were very white.
"I can't tell," he answered. "But--don't worry."
He hurried Hamilton down the steps and pushed him into the car.
"To the Hotel Normandie," he ordered the driver, as he stumbled in
himself.
The bumping of the car hurt Monte's arm a good deal. In fact, with
every bump he felt as if Hamilton were prodding his shoulder with a
stiletto. Besides being unpleasant, this told rapidly on his strength,
and that was dangerous. Above all things, he must remain conscious.
Hamilton was quiet because he thought Monte still had the gun and was
still able to use it; but let him sway, and matters would be reversed.
So Monte gripped his jaws and bent his full energy to keeping control
of himself until they crossed the Seine. It seemed like a full day's
journey before he saw that the muddy waters were behind them. Then he
ordered the driver to stop.
Hamilton's shifty eyes looked up.
"Hamilton," said Monte, "have you got it clear yet that--that Miss
Stockton and I are engaged?"
Hamilton did not answer. His fingers were working nervously.
Monte, summoning all his strength, shook the fellow.
"Do you hear?" he called.
"Yes," muttered Hamilton.
"Then," said Monte, "I want you to get hold of the next point: that
from now on you're to let her alone. Get that?"
Hamilton's lips began to twitch.
"Because if you come around bothering her any more," explained Monte,
"I'll be there myself; and, believe me, you'll go out the door. And if
you try any more gun-play--the little fellows will nail you next time.
Sure as preaching, they'll nail you. That would be too bad for every
one--for you and for her."
"How for her?" demanded Hamilton hoarsely.
"The papers," answered Monte. "And for you because--"
"I don't care what they do to me," growled Hamilton.
"I believe that," nodded Monte. "Do you know that I 'm the one person
on earth who is inclined to believe what you say?"
He saw Hamilton crouch as if to spring. Monte placed his left hand in
his empty pocket.
"Steady," he warned. "There are still four shots left in that gun."
Hamilton relaxed.
"You don't care what the little fellows do to you," said Monte. "But
you don't want to queer yourself any further with her, do you? Now,
listen. She thinks you tried to shoot yourself. By that much I have a
hunch she thinks the better of you."
Hamilton groaned,
"And because I believe what you told me about her," he ran on, fighting
for breath--"just because--because I believe the shooting fits into
that, I 'm glad to--to have her think that little the better of you,
Hamilton."
The interior of the cab was beginning to move slowly around in a
circle. He leaned back his head a second to steady himself--his white
lips pressed together.
"So--so--clear out," he whispered.
"You--you won't tell her?"
"No. But--clear out, quick."
Hamilton opened the cab door.
"Got any money?" inquired Monte.
"No."
Monte drew out his bill-book and handed it to Hamilton.
"Take what there is," he ordered.
Hamilton obeyed, and returned the empty purse.
"Remember," faltered Monte, his voice trailing off into an inaudible
murmur, "we're engaged--Marjory and I--"
But Hamilton had disappeared. It was the driver who was peering in the
door.
"Where next, monsieur?" he was saying.
"Normandie," muttered Monte.
The windows began to revolve in a circle before his eyes--faster and
faster, until suddenly he no longer was conscious of the pain in his
shoulder.
CHAPTER VI
GENDARMES AND ETHER
When the gendarmes came hurrying to sixty-four Boulevard Saint-Germain,
Marjory was the only one in the house cool enough to meet them at the
door. She quieted them with a smile.
"It is too bad, messieurs," she apologized, because it did seem too bad
to put them to so much trouble for nothing. "It was only a
disagreeable incident between friends, and it is closed. Madame Courcy
lost her head."
"But we were told it was an assassination," the lieutenant informed
her. He was a very smart-looking lieutenant, and he noticed her eyes
at once.
"To have an assassination it is necessary to have some one
assassinated, is it not?" inquired Marjory.
"But yes, certainly."
"Then truly it is a mistake, because the two gentlemen went off
together in a cab."
The lieutenant took out a memorandum-book.
"Is that necessary?" asked Marjory anxiously.
"A report must be made."
"It was nothing, I assure you," she insisted. "It was what in America
is called a false alarm."
"You are American?" inquired the lieutenant, twisting his mustache.
"It is a compliment to my French that you did not know," smiled Marjory.
It was also a compliment to the lieutenant that she smiled. At least,
it was so that he interpreted it.
"The report is only a matter of routine," he informed her. "If
mademoiselle will kindly give me her name."
"But the newspapers!" she exclaimed. "They make so much of so little."
"It will be a pleasure to see that the report is treated as
confidential," said the lieutenant, with a bow.
So, as a matter of fact, after a perfunctory interview with madame and
Marie, who had so far recovered themselves as to be easily handled by
Marjory, the lieutenant and his men bowed themselves out and the
incident was closed.
Marjory escorted them to the door, and then, a little breathless with
excitement, went into the reception room a moment to collect herself.
The scene was set exactly as it had been when from upstairs she heard
that shot--the shot that for a second had checked her breathing as if
she herself had been hit. As clearly as if she had been in the room,
she had seen Monte stretched out on the floor, with Hamilton bending
over him. She had not thought of any other possibility. As she sprang
down the stairs she had been sure of what she was about to see. But
when she entered she had found Monte standing erect--erect and smiling,
with his light hair all awry like a schoolboy's.
Then, sinking into the chair near the window,--this very chair beside
which she now stood,--he had asked her to go out and attend to madame.
Come to think of it, it was odd that he had been smiling. It was not
quite natural for one to smile over as serious a matter as that. After
all, even if Teddy was melodramatic, even if his shot had missed its
mark, it was not a matter to take lightly.
She seated herself in the chair he had occupied, and her hands dropped
wearily to her side. Her fingers touched something sticky--something
on the side of the chair next to the wall--something that the gendarmes
had not noticed. She did not dare to move them. She was paralyzed, as
if her fingers had met some cold, strange hand. For one second, two
seconds, three seconds, she sat there transfixed, fearing, if she moved
as much as a muscle, that something would spring at her from
below--some awful fact.
Then finally she did move. She moved slowly, with her eyes closed.
Then, suddenly opening them wide, she saw her fingers stained carmine.
She knew then why Monte had smiled. It was like him to do that.
Running swiftly to her room, she called Marie as she ran.
"Marie--my hat! Your hat! Hurry!"
"Oh, mon Dieu!" exclaimed Marie. "Has anything happened?"
"I have just learned what has already happened," she answered. "But do
not alarm madame."
It was impossible not to alarm madame.
The mere fact that they were going out alarmed madame. Marjory stopped
in the hall and quite coolly worked on her gloves.
"We are going for a little walk in the sunshine," she said. "Will you
not come with us?"
Decidedly madame would not. She was too weak and faint. She should
send for a friend to stay with her while she rested on her bed.
"That is best for you," nodded Marjory. "Au revoir."
With Marie by her side, she took her little walk in the sunshine,
without hurrying, as far as around the first corner. Then she signaled
for a cab, and showed the driver a louis d'or.
"Hotel Normandie. This is for you--if you make speed," she said.
It was a wonder the driver was not arrested within a block; but it was
nothing less than a miracle that he reached the hotel without loss of
life. A louis d'or is a great deal of money, but these Americans are
all mad. When Marie followed her mistress from the cab, she made a
little prayer of thanks to the bon Dieu who had saved her life.
Mademoiselle inquired of the clerk for Monsieur Covington.
Yes, Monsieur Covington had reached the hotel some fifteen minutes
before. But he was ill. He had met with an accident. Already a
surgeon was with him.
"He--he is not badly injured?" inquired Marjory.
"I do not know," answered the clerk. "He was carried to his room in a
faint. He was very white."
"I will wait in the writing-room. When the surgeon comes down I wish
to see him. At once--do you understand?"
"Yes, mademoiselle."
Marie suspected what had happened. Monsieur Covington, too, had
presented the driver with a louis d'or, and--miracles do not occur
twice in one day.
Marjory seated herself by a desk, where she had a full view of the
office--of all who came in and all who went out. That she was here
doing this and that Monte Covington was upstairs wounded by a pistol
shot was confusing, considering the fact that as short a time ago as
yesterday evening she had not been conscious of the existence in Paris
of either this hotel or of Monsieur Covington. Of the man who, on the
other hand, had been disturbing her a great deal--this Teddy
Hamilton--she thought not at all. It was as if he had ceased to exist.
She did not even associate him, at this moment, with her presence here.
She was here solely because of Monte.
He had stood by the window in Madame Courcy's dingy reception room,
smiling--his hair all awry. She recalled many other details now: how
his arm had hung limp; how he had been to a good deal of awkward
trouble to keep his left arm always toward her; how white he had been
when he passed her on his way out; how he had seemed to stumble when he
stepped into the cab.
She must have been a fool not to understand that something was wrong
with him--the more so because only a few minutes before that he had
stood before her with his cheeks a deep red, his body firm, his eyes
clear and bright.
That was when he had asked her to marry him. Monte Covington had asked
her to marry him, and she had consented. With her chin in her hand,
she thought that over. He had asked her in order that it might be his
privilege to go downstairs and rid her of Teddy. It had been suggested
in a moment, and she had consented in a moment. So, technically, she
was at this moment engaged. The man upstairs was her fiance. That
gave her the right to be here. It was as if this had all been arranged
beforehand to this very end.
It was this feature of her strange position that interested her. She
had been more startled, more excited, when Monte proposed, than she was
at this moment. It had taken away her breath at first; but now she was
able to look at it quite coolly. He did not love her, he said. Good
old Monte--honest and four-square. Of course he did not love her. Why
should he? He was leading his life, with all the wide world to wander
over, free to do this or to do that; utterly without care; utterly
without responsibility.
It was this that had always appealed to her in him ever since she had
first known him. It was this that had made her envious of him. It was
exactly as she would have done in his circumstances. It was exactly as
she tried to do when her own circumstances changed so that it had
seemed possible. She had failed merely because she was a
woman--because men refused to leave her free.
His proposal was merely that she share his freedom. Good old
Monte--honest and four-square!
In return, there were little ways in which she might help him, even as
he might help her; but they had come faster than either had expected.
Where was the surgeon? She rose and went to the clerk.
"Are you sure the surgeon has not gone?" she asked.
"Very sure," answered the clerk. "He has just sent out for a nurse to
remain with monsieur."
"A nurse?" repeated Marjory.
"The doctor says Monsieur Covington must not be left alone."
"It's as bad--as that?" questioned Marjory.
"I do not know."
"I must see the doctor at once," she said. "But, first,--can you give
me apartments on the same floor,--for myself and maid? I am his
fiancee," she informed him.
"I can give mademoiselle apartments adjoining," said the clerk eagerly.
"Then do so."
She signed her name in the register, and beckoned for Marie.
"Marie," she said, "you may return and finish packing my trunks.
Please bring them here."
"Here?" queried Marie.
"Here," answered Marjory.
She turned to the clerk.
"Take me upstairs at once."
There was a strong smell of ether in the hall outside the door of Monte
Covington's room. It made her gasp for a moment. It seemed to make
concrete what, after all, had until this moment been more or less
vague. It was like fiction suddenly made true. That pungent odor was
a grim reality. So was that black-bearded Dr. Marcellin, who, leaving
his patient in the hands of his assistant, came to the door wiping his
hands upon a towel.
"I am Mr. Covington's fiancee--Miss Stockton," she said at once. "You
will tell me the truth?"
After one glance at her eyes Dr. Marcellin was willing to tell the
truth.
"It is an ugly bullet wound in his shoulder," he said.
"It is not serious?"
"Such things are always serious. Luckily, I was able to find the
bullet and remove it. It was a narrow escape for him."
"Of course," she added, "I shall serve as his nurse."
"Good," he nodded.
But he added, having had some experience with fiancees as nurses:--
"Of course I shall have for a week my own nurse also; but I shall be
glad of your assistance. This--er--was an accident?"
She nodded.
"He was trying to save a foolish friend from killing himself."
"I understand."
"Nothing more need be said about it?"
"Nothing more," Dr. Marcellin assured her. "If you will come in I will
give you your instructions. Mademoiselle Duval will soon be here."
"Is she necessary?" inquired Marjory. "I have engaged the next
apartment for myself and maid."
"That is very good, but--Mademoiselle Duval is necessary for the
present. Will you come in?"
She followed the doctor into Monsieur Covington's room. There the odor
of ether hung still heavier.
She heard him muttering a name. She listened to catch it.
"Edhart," he called. "Oh, Edhart!"
CHAPTER VII
THE ADVANTAGES OF BEING SHOT
Under proper conditions, being wounded in the shoulder may have its
pleasant features. They were not so obvious to Monte in the early part
of the evening, because he was pretty much befuddled with ether; but
sometime before dawn he woke up feeling fairly normal and clear-headed
and interested. This was where fifteen years of clean living counted
for something. When Marcellin and his assistant had first stripped
Monte to the waist the day before, they had paused for a moment to
admire what they called his torso. It was not often, in their city
practice, that they ran across a man of thirty with muscles as clearly
outlined as in an anatomical illustration.
Monte was conscious of a burning pain in his shoulder, and he was not
quite certain as to where he was. So he hitched up on one elbow. This
caused a shadow to detach itself from the dark at the other end of the
room--a shadow that rustled and came toward him. It is small wonder
that he was startled.
"Who the deuce are you?" he inquired in plain English.
"Monsieur is not to sit up," the shadow answered in plain French.
Monte repeated his question, this time in French.
"I am the nurse sent here by Dr. Marcellin," she informed him.
"Monsieur is not to talk."
She placed her hand below his neck and helped him to settle down again
upon his pillow. Then she rustled off again beyond the range of the
shaded electric light.
"What happened?" Monte called into the dark.
Then he thought he heard a door open, and further rustling, and a
whispered conversation.
"Who's that?" he demanded.
It sounded like a conspiracy of some sort, so he tried again to make
his elbow. Mademoiselle appeared promptly, and, again placing her hand
beneath his neck, lowered him once more to his pillow.
"Turn up the light, will you?" requested Monte.
"But certainly not," answered the nurse. "Monsieur is to lie very
quiet and sleep."
"I can't sleep."
"Perhaps it will help monsieur to be quiet if he knows his fiancee is
in the next room."
Momentarily this announcement appeared to have directly the opposite
effect.
"My what?" gasped Monte.
"Monsieur's fiancee. With her maid, she is occupying the next
apartment in order to be near monsieur. If you are very quiet
to-night, it is possible that to-morrow the doctor will permit you to
see her."
"Was that she who came in and whispered to you?"
"Yes, monsieur."
Monte remained quiet after that--but he was not sleeping. He was
thinking.
In the first place, this was enough to make him recall all that had
happened. This led him to speculate on all that might be about to
happen--how much he could not at that moment even imagine. Neither
line of thought was conducive to sleep.
Marjory was in the next room, awake, and at the sound of his voice had
come in. In the dark, even with this great night city of Paris asleep
around him, she had come near enough so that he heard the rustle of her
skirt and her whispering voice. That was unusual--most unusual--and
rather satisfactory. If worse came to worse and he reached a point
where it was necessary for him to talk to some one, he could get her in
here again in spite of this nurse woman. He had only to call her name.
Not that he really had any intention in the world of doing it. The
idea rather embarrassed him. He would not know what to say to a young
lady at this hour of the night--even Marjory. But there she was--some
one from home, some one he knew and who knew him. It was like having
Edhart within reach.
In this last week he had sometimes awakened as he was now awake, and
the silence had oppressed him. Ordinarily there was nothing morbid
about Monte, but Edhart's death and the big empty space that was left
all about Nice, the silence where once he had been so sure of hearing
Edhart's voice, the ghostly reminders of Edhart in those who clicked
about in Edhart's bones without his flesh--all these things had given
Monte's thoughts an occasional novel trend.
Once or twice he had gone as far as to picture himself as upon the
point of death here in this foreign city. It was a very sad, a
melancholy thing to speak about. He might call until he was hoarse,
and no one would answer except possibly the night clerk or a gendarme.
And they would look upon him only as something of a nuisance. It is
really pathetic--the depths of misery into which a healthy man may, in
such a mood, plunge himself.
All around him the dark, silent city, asleep save for the night clerks,
the gendarmes, the evildoers, and the merrymakers. And these last
would only leer at him. If he did not join them, then it was his fault
if he lay dying alone.
"Is she in there now?" Monte called to the nurse in the dark.
"Certainly, monsieur. But I thought you were sleeping."
No, he was not sleeping; but he did not mind now the pain in his
shoulder. She had announced herself as his fiancee. Well,
technically, she was. He had asked her to marry him, and she had
accepted. At the time he had not seen much farther ahead than the next
few minutes; and even then had not foreseen what was to happen in those
few minutes. The proposal had given him his right to talk to Hamilton,
and her acceptance--well, it had given Marjory her right to be here.
Curious thing about that code of rights and wrongs! Society was a
stickler for form. If either he or Marjory had neglected the
preliminaries, then he might have lain here alone for a week, with
society shaking its Puritan head. This nurse woman might have come,
but she did not count; and, besides, he had to get shot before even she
would be allowed.
Now it was all right. It was all right and proper for her, all right
and proper for him, all right and proper for society. Not only that,
but it was so utterly normal that society would have frowned if she had
not hurried to his side in such an emergency. It forced her here,
willy-nilly. Perhaps that was the only reason she was here.
Still, he did not like to think that. She was too true blue to quit a
friend. It would be more like her to come anyway. He remembered how
she had stood by that old aunt to the end. She would be standing by
her to-day were she alive. Even Chic, who fulfilled his own
obligations to the last word, had sometimes urged her to lead her own
life, and she had only smiled. There was man stuff in her.
It showed when she announced to these people her engagement. He did
not believe she did that either because it was necessary or proper.
She did it because it was the literal truth, and she was not ashamed of
the literal truth in anything.
"Is Mademoiselle Stockton sitting up--there in the next room?"
"I do not know," answered the nurse.
"Do you mind finding out for me?"
"If monsieur will promise to sleep after that."
"How can a man promise to sleep?"
Even under normal conditions, that was a foolish thing to promise. But
when a man was experiencing brand-new sensations--the sensations of
being engaged--it was quite impossible to make such a promise.
"Monsieur can at least promise not to talk."
"I will do that," agreed Monte.
She came back and reported that mademoiselle was sitting up, and begged
to present her regards and express the hope that he was resting
comfortably.
"Please to tell her I am, and that I hope she will now go to bed," he
answered.
Nurse Duval did that, and returned.
"What did she say?" inquired Monte.
"But, monsieur--"
She had no intention of spending the rest of the night as a messenger
between those two rooms.
"Very well," submitted Monte. "But you might tell me what she said."
"She said she was not sleepy," answered the nurse.
"I'm glad she's awake," said Monte.
Just because he was awake. In a sense, it gave them this city for
themselves. It was as if this immediately became their city. That was
not good arithmetic. Assuming that the city contained a population of
three millions,--he did not have his Baedeker at hand,--then clearly he
could consider only one three millionth part of the city as his. With
her awake in the next room, that made only two of them, so that taken
collectively they had a right to claim only two three-millionths parts
as belonging to them. Yet that was not the way it worked out. As far
as he was concerned, the other two millions nine hundred and
ninety-nine thousand nine hundred and ninety-eight did not exist.
There was nothing sentimental about this conclusion. He did not think
of it as it affected her--merely as it affected him. It gave him
rather a comfortable, completed feeling, as if he now had within
himself the means for peacefully enjoying life, wherever he might be,
even at thirty-two. Under the influence of this soothing thought, he
fell asleep again.
After the doctors were through with Monte the next morning, they
decided, after a consultation, that there was no apparent reason why,
during the day, Miss Stockton, if she desired, should not serve as his
nurse while Miss Duval went home to sleep.
"My assistant will come in at least twice," said Dr. Marcellin.
"Besides, you have the constitution of a prize-fighter. It might well
be possible to place a bullet through the heart of such a man without
greatly discommoding him."
He spoke as if with some resentment.
After they had gone out, Marjory came in. She hesitated at the door a
moment, perhaps to make sure that he was awake; perhaps to make sure
that she herself was awake. Monte, from the bed, could see her better
than she could see him. He thought she looked whiter than usual, but
she was very beautiful.
There was something about her that distinguished her from other
women--from this nurse woman, for example, who was the only other woman
with whom it was possible to compare her in a like situation. With one
hand resting on the door, her chin well up, she looked more than ever
like Her Royal Highness Something or Other. She was dressed in
something white and light and fluffy, like the gowns he used to see on
Class Day. Around her white throat there was a narrow band of black
velvet.
"Good-morning, Marjory," he called.
She came at once to his side, walking graciously, as a princess might
walk.
"I did n't know if you were awake," she said.
It was one thing to have her here in the dark, and another to have her
here in broad daylight. The sun was streaming in at the windows now,
and outside the birds were chattering.
"Did you rest well last night?" she inquired.
"I heard you when you came in and whispered to the nurse woman. It was
mighty white of you to come."
"What else could I do?" She seated herself in a chair by his bed.
"Because we are engaged?" he asked.
She smiled a little as he said that.
"Then you have not forgotten?"
"Forgotten!" he exclaimed. "I'm just beginning to realize it."
"I was afraid it might come back to you as a shock, Monte," she said.
"But it is very convenient--at just this time."
"I don't know what I should have done without it," he nodded. "It
certainly gives a man a comfortable feeling to know--well, just to know
there is some one around."
"I'm glad if I've been able to do anything."
"It's a whole lot just having you here," he assured her.
It changed the whole character of this room, for one thing. It ceased
to be merely a hotel room--merely number fifty-four attached with a big
brass star to a key. It was more like a room in the Hotel des Roses,
which was the nearest to home of any place Monte had found in a decade.
It was as if when she came in she completely refurnished it with little
things with which he was familiar. Edhart always used to place flowers
in his apartment; and it was like that.
"The only bother with the arrangement," he said, looking serious, "is
that it takes your time. Ought n't you to be at Julien's this morning?"
She had forgotten about Julien's. Yet for the last two years it had
been the very center of her own individual life. Now the crowded
studio, the smell of turpentine, the odd cosmopolitan gathering of
fellow students, the little pangs following the bitter criticisms of
the master, receded into the background until they became as a dream of
long ago.
"I don't think I shall ever go to Julien's again," she answered.
"But look here--that won't do," he objected. "If I'm to interfere with
all your plans--"
"It isn't that, Monte," she assured him. "Ever since I came back this
last time, I knew I did n't belong there. When Aunt Kitty was alive it
was all the opportunity I had; but now--" She paused.
"Well?"
"I have my hands full with you until you get out again," she answered
lightly.
"That's what I object to," he said; "If being engaged is going to pin
you down, then I don't think you ought to be engaged. You've had
enough of that in your life."
The curious feature of her present position was that she had no sense
of being pinned down. She had thought of this in the night. She had
never felt freer in her life. Within a few hours of her engagement she
had been able to do exactly what she wished to do without a single
qualm of conscience. She had been able to come here and look after him
in this emergency. She would have done this anyway, but she knew how
Marcellin and his assistant and even Nurse Duval would have made her
pay for her act--an act based upon nothing but decent loyalty and
honest responsibility. Raised eyebrows--gossip in the air--covert
smiles--the whole detestable atmosphere of intrigue with which they
would have surrounded her, had vanished as by a spell before the magic
word fiancee. She was breathing air like that upon the mountain-tops.
It was sweet and clean and bracing.
"Monte," she said, "I'm doing at this moment just exactly what I want
to do; and you can't understand what a treat that is, because you've
always done just exactly as you wanted. I 'm sure I 'm entirely
selfish about this, because--because I'm not making any sacrifice. You
can't understand that, either, Monte,--so please don't try. I think
we'd better not talk any more about it. Can't we just let it go on as
it is a little while?"
"It suits me," smiled Monte. "So maybe I'm selfish, too."
"Maybe," she nodded. "Now I'll see about your breakfast. The doctor
told me just what you must have."
So she went out--moving away like a vision in dainty white across the
room and out the door. A few minutes later she was back again with a
vase of red roses, which she arranged upon the table where he could see
them.
CHAPTER VIII
DRAWBACKS OF RECOVERY
Monte's recovery was rapid--in many ways more rapid than he desired.
In a few days Nurse Duval disappeared, and in a few days more Monte was
able to dress himself with the help of the hotel valet, and sit by the
window while Marjory read to him. Half the time he gave no heed to
what she was reading, but that did not detract from his pleasure in the
slightest. He liked the sound of her voice, and liked the idea of
sitting opposite her.
Her eyes were always interesting when she read. For then she forgot
about them and let them have their own way--now to light with a smile,
now to darken with disapproval, and sometimes to grow very tender, as
the story she happened to be reading dictated.
This was luxury such as Monte had never known, and for more than ten
years now he had ordered of the world its choicest in the way of luxury.
At his New York club the experience of many, many years in catering to
man comfort was placed at his disposal. As far as possible, every
desire was anticipated, so that little more effort was required of him
than merely to furnish the desires. In a house where no limit whatever
had been set upon the expense, a hundred lackeys stood ready to jump if
a man as much as raised an eyebrow. And they understood, those
fellows, what a man needs--from the chef who searched the markets of
the world to satisfy tender tastes, to the doorman who acquainted
himself with the names of the members and their personal idiosyncrasies.
That same service was furnished him, if to a more limited extent, on
the transatlantic liners, where Monte's name upon the passenger list
was immediately passed down the line with the word that he must have
the best. At Davos his needs were anticipated a week in advance; at
Nice there had been Edhart, who added his smiling self to everything
else.
But no one at his club, on the boat, or at Davos--not even Edhart--had
given him this: this being the somewhat vague word he used to describe
what he was now enjoying as Marjory sat by the window reading to him.
It had nothing to do with being read aloud to. He could at any time
have summoned a valet to do that, and in five minutes would have felt
like throwing the book--any book--at the valet's head. It had nothing
to do with the mere fact that she was a woman. Nurse Duval could not
have taken her place. Kind as she had been, he was heartily bored with
her before she left.
It would seem, then, that in some mysterious way he derived his
pleasure from Marjory herself. But, if so, then she had gone farther
than all those who made it their life-work to see that man was
comfortable; for they satisfied only existing wants, while she created
a new one. Whenever she left the room he was conscious of this want.
Yet, when Monte faced the issue squarely and asked himself if this were
not a symptom of being in love, he answered it as fairly as he could
out of an experience that covered Chic Warren's pre-nuptial
brain-storms; a close observation of several dozen honeymoon couples on
shipboard, to say nothing of many incipient cases which started there;
and, finally, the case of Teddy Hamilton.
The leading feature of all those distressing examples seemed to
indicate that, while theoretically the man was in an ideal state of
blissful ecstasy, he was, practically, in a condition bordering on
madness. At the very moment he was supposed to be happy, he was about
half the time most miserable. Even at its best, it did not make for
comfort. Poor Chic ran the gamut every week from hell to heaven. It
was with a sigh of relief that Monte was able to answer his own
question conscientiously in the negative. It was just because he was
able to retain the use of his faculties that he was able to enjoy the
situation.
Monte liked to consider himself thoroughly normal in everything. As
far as he had any theory of life, it was based upon the wisdom of
keeping cool--of keeping normal. To get the utmost out of every day,
this was necessary. It was not the man who drank too much who enjoyed
his wine: it was the man who drank little. That was true of
everything. If Hamilton had only kept his head--well, after all, Monte
was indebted to Hamilton for not having kept his head.
Monte was not in love: that was certain. Marjory was not in love: that
also was certain. This was why he was able to light his cigarette,
lean back his head on the pillow she arranged, and drift into a state
of dreamy content as she read to him. This happy arrangement might go
on forever except that, in the course of time, his shoulder was bound
to heal. And then--he knew well enough that old Dame Society was even
at the end of these first ten days beginning to fidget. He knew that
Marjory knew it, too. It began the day Dr. Marcellin advised him to
take a walk in the Champs Elysees.
He was perfectly willing to do that. It was beautiful out there. They
sat down at one of the little iron tables--the little tables were so
warm and sociable now--and beneath the whispering trees sipped their
cafe au lait. But the fact that he was able to get out of his room
seemed to make a difference in their thoughts. It was as if his status
had changed. It was as if those who passed him, with a glance at his
arm in its sling, stopped to tell him so.
It was none of their business, at that. It would have been sheer
presumption of them to have butted into any of the other affairs of his
life: whether he was losing money or making money; whether he was going
to England or to Spain, or going to remain where he was; whether he
preferred chops for breakfast, or bread and coffee. Theoretically,
then, it was sheer presumption for them to interest themselves in the
question of whether he was an invalid confined to his room, or a
convalescent able to get out, or a man wholly recovered.
Yet he knew that, with every passing day that he came out into the
sunshine, these same people were managing to make Marjory's position
more and more delicate. It became increasingly less comfortable for
her and for him when they returned to the hotel.
Therefore he was not greatly surprised when she remarked one morning:--
"Monte, I've been thinking over where I shall go, and I 've about
decided to go to Etois."
"When?" he asked.
"Very soon--before the end of the week, anyway."
"But look here!" he protested. "What am I going to do?"
"I don't know," she smiled. "But one thing is certain: you can't play
sick very much longer."
"The doctor says it will be another two weeks before my arm is out of
the sling."
"Even so, the rest of you is well. There is n't much excuse for my
bringing in your breakfasts, Monte."
"Do you mind doing it?"
"No."
"Who is to tie on this silk handkerchief?" He wore a black silk
handkerchief over his bandages, which she always adjusted for him.
She met his eyes a moment, and smiled again.
"I'm going to Etois," she said. "I think I shall get a little villa
there and stay all summer."
"Then," he declared, "I think I shall go to Etois myself."
"I 'm afraid you must n't."
"But the doctor says I must n't play golf for six months. What do you
think I'm going to do with myself until then?"
"There's all the rest of the world," she suggested.
Monte frowned.
"Are you going to break our engagement, then?"
"It has served its purpose, hasn't it?" she asked.
"Up to now," he admitted. "But you say it can't go any farther."
"No, Monte."
The next suggestion that leaped into Monte's mind was obvious enough,
yet he paused a moment before voicing it. Perhaps even then he would
not have found the courage had he not been rather panic-stricken. He
had exactly the same feeling, when he thought of her in Etois, that he
had when he thought of Edhart in Paradise. It started as resentment,
but ended in a slate-gray loneliness.
He could imagine himself as sitting here alone at one of these little
iron tables, and decidedly it was not pleasant. When he pictured
himself as returning to his room in the hotel and to the company of the
hotel valet, it put him in a mood that augured ill for the valet.
It would have been bad enough had he been able to resume his normal
schedule and fill his time with golf; but, with even that relaxation
denied him, such a situation as she proposed was impossible. For the
present, at any rate, she was absolutely indispensable. She ought to
know that a valet could not adjust a silk handkerchief properly, and
that without this he could not even go upon the street. And who would
read to him from the American papers?
There was no further excuse, she said, for her to bring in his
breakfasts, but if she did not sit opposite him at breakfast, what in
thunder was the use of eating breakfast? If she had not begun
breakfasting with him, then he would never have known the difference.
But she had begun it; she had first suggested it. And now she calmly
proposed turning him over to a valet.
"Marjory," he said, "didn't I ask you to marry me?"
She nodded.
"That was necessary in order that we might be engaged," she reminded
him.
"Exactly," he agreed. "Now there seems to be only one way that we may
keep right on being engaged."
"I don't see that, Monte," she answered. "We may keep on being engaged
as long as we please, may n't we?"
"It seems not. That is, there is n't much sense in it if it won't let
me go to Etois with you."
"Of course you can't do that."
"And yet," he said, "if we were married I could go, couldn't I?"
"Why--er--yes," she faltered; "I suppose so."
"Then," he said, "why don't we get married?"
She did not turn away her head. She lifted her dark eyes to his.
"Just what do you mean, Monte?" she demanded.
"I mean," he said uneasily, "that we should get married just so that we
can go on--as we have been these last ten days. Really, we'll still
only be engaged, but no one need know that. Besides, no one will care,
if we're married."
He gained confidence as he went on, though he was somewhat afraid of
the wonder in her eyes.
"People don't care anything more about you after you're married," he
said. "They just let you drop as if you were done for. It's a queer
thing, but they do. Why, if we were married we could sit here all day
and no one would give us a second glance. We could have breakfast
together as often as we wished, and no one would care a hang. I've
seen it done. We could go to Etois together, and I could pay for half
the villa and you could pay for half. You can bring Marie, and we can
stay as long as we wish without having any one turn an eye."
He was growing enthusiastic now.
"There will be nothing to prevent you from doing just as you wish. You
can paint all day if you want. You can paint yards of things--olive
trees and sky and rocks. There are lots of them around Etois. And I--"
"Yes," she interrupted; "what can you do, Monte?"
"I can watch you paint," he answered. "Or I can walk. Or I can--oh,
there'll be plenty for me to do. If we tire of Etois we can move
somewhere else. If we tire of each other's company, why, we can each
go somewhere else. It's simple, is n't it? We can both do just as we
please, can't we? There won't be a living soul with the right to open
his head to us. Do you get that? Why, even if you want to go off by
yourself, with Mrs. in front of your name they'll let you alone."
At first she had been surprised, then she had been amused, but now she
was thinking.
"It's queer, is n't it, Monte, that it should be like that?"
"It's the way it is. It makes everything simple and puts the whole
matter up to us."
"Yes," she admitted thoughtfully.
"Of course," he said, "I'm assuming you don't mind having me around
quite a lot."
"No, I don't mind that," she assured him. "But I 'm wondering if
you'll mind--having me around?"
"I did n't realize until this last week how--well, how comfortable it
was having you around," he confessed.
She glanced up.
"Yes," she said, "that's the word. I think we've made each other
comfortable. After all--that's something."
"It's a whole lot."
"And it need n't ever be anything else, need it?"
"Certainly not," he declared. "That would spoil everything. That's
what we're trying to avoid."
To his surprise, she suddenly rose as if to leave.
"Look here!" he exclaimed. "Can't we settle this right now--so that we
won't have to worry about it?"
He disliked having anything left to worry about.
"I should think the least you'd expect of me would be to think it
over," she answered.
"It would be so much simpler just to go ahead," he declared.
There seemed to be no apparent reason in the world why she should not
assent to Monte's proposal. In and of itself, the arrangement offered
her exactly what she craved--the widest possible freedom to lead her
own life without let or hindrance from any one, combined with the least
possible responsibility. As far as she could see, it would remove once
and for all the single fretting annoyance that, so far, had disarranged
all her plans.
Monte's argument was sound. Once she was married, the world of men
would let her alone. So, too, would the world of women. She could
face them both with a challenge to dispute her privileges. All this
she would receive without any of the obligations with which most women
pay so heavily for their release from the bondage in which they are
held until married. For they pay even more when they love--pay the
more, in a way, the more they love. It cannot be helped.
She was thinking of the Warrens--the same Warrens Monte had visited
when Chic, Junior had the whooping cough. She had been there when
Chic, Junior was born. Marion had wanted her near--in the next room.
She had learned then how they pay--these women who love.
She had been there at other times--less dramatic times. It was just
the same. From the moment Marion awoke in the morning until she sank
wearily into her bed at night, her time, her thought, her heart, her
soul almost, was claimed by some one else. She gave, gave, until
nothing was left for herself.
Marjory, in her lesser way, had done much the same--so she knew the
cost. It was rare when she had been able to leave her aunt for a whole
day and night. Year after year, she too had awakened in the morning to
her tasks for another--for this woman who had demanded them as her
right. She too had given her time, her thought, her soul, almost, to
another. If she had not given her heart, it was perhaps because it was
not asked; perhaps, again, it was because she had no heart to give.
Sometimes, in that strange, emotionless existence she had lived so long
where duty took the place of love, she had wondered about that. If she
had a heart, it never beat any faster to let her know she had it.
She paid her debt of duty in full--paid until her release came. In the
final two weeks of her aunt's life she had never left her side.
Patiently, steadfastly, she helped with all there was in her to fight
that last fight. When it was over, she did not break down, as the
doctors predicted. She went to bed and slept forty-eight hours, and
awoke ten years younger.
She awoke as one out of bondage, and stared with keen, eager eyes at a
new world. For a few weeks she had twenty-four hours a day of her own.
Then Peter had come, and others had come, and finally Teddy had come.
They wanted to take from her that which she had just gained--each in
his own fashion.
"Give us of yourself," they pleaded. "Begin again your sacrifices."
Peter put it best, even though he did not say much. But she had only
to look in his eyes and read his proposal.
"Come with me and stand by my side while I carve my career," was what
his eyes said. "I'll love you and make you love me as Marion loves.
You 'll begin the day with me, and you 'll guard my home while I 'm
gone until night, and you'll share my honors and my disappointments,
and perhaps a time will come when Marion will stand in the next room,
as once you stood in the next room. Then--"
It was at this point she drew back. Then her soul would go out into
the new-born soul, and after that she would only live and breathe and
hope through that other. When Marion laughed and said that she was as
she was because she did not know, Marion was wrong. It was because she
did know--because she knew how madly and irrevocably she would give, if
ever she gave again. There would be nothing left for herself at all.
It would be as if she had died.
She did not wish to give like that. She wished to live a little. She
wished to be herself a little--herself as she now was. She wished to
get back some of those years between seventeen and twenty-seven--taste
the world as it was then.
What Teddy offered was different. Something was there that even Peter
did not have--something that made her catch her breath once or twice
when he sang to her like a white-robed choir-boy. It was as if he
asked her to take his hand and jump with him into a white-hot flame.
He carried her farther back in her passions than Peter did--back to
seventeen, back to the primitive, elemental part of her. He really
made her heart beat. But on guard within her stood the older woman,
and she could not move.
Now came Monte--asking nothing. He asked nothing because he wished to
give nothing. She was under no illusion about that. There was not
anything idealistic about Monte. This was to be purely an arrangement
for their mutual comfort. They were to be companions on an indefinite
tour of the world--each paying his own bills.
At thirty-two he needed a comrade of some sort, and in his turn he
offered himself as an escort. She found no apparent reason, then, even
when she had spent half the night getting as far as this, why she
should not immediately accept his proposal. Yet she still hesitated.
It was not that she did not trust Monte. Not the slightest doubt in
the world existed in her mind about that. She would trust him farther
than she would even Peter--trust him farther than any man she had ever
met. He was four-square, and she knew it. Perhaps it was a curious
suggestion--it was just because of this that she hesitated.
In a way, she was considering Monte. She did not like to help him give
up responsibilities that might be good for him. She was somewhat
disappointed that he was willing to give them up. He did not have the
excuse she had--years of self-sacrifice. He had been free all his life
to indulge himself, and he had done so. He had never known a care,
never known a heartache. Having money, he had used it decently, so
that he had avoided even the compensating curse that is supposed to
come with money.
She knew there was a lot to Monte. She had sensed that from the first.
He had proved it in the last two weeks. It only needed some one to
bring it out, and he would average high. Love might do it--the same
white-hot love that had driven Teddy mad.
But that was what he was avoiding, just as she was. Well, what of it?
If one did not reach the heights, then one did not sound the depths.
After all, it was not within her province to direct Monte's life. She
was selfish--she had warned him of that. He was selfish--and had
warned her.
Yet, as she lay there in her bed, she felt that she was about to give
up something forever, and that Monte was about to give up something
forever. It is one thing not to want something, and another to make an
irrevocable decision never to have it. Also, it is one thing to fret
one's self into an unnecessary panic over a problem at night, and
another to handle it lightly in the balmy sunshine of a Parisian
springtime morning.
Monte had risen early and gone out and bought her violets again. When
she came in, he handed them to her, and she buried her face in their
dewy fragrance. It was good to have some one think of just such little
attentions. Then, too, his boyish enthusiasm swept her off her guard.
He was so eager and light-hearted this morning that she found herself
breaking into a laugh. She was still laughing when he brought back to
her last night's discussion.
"Well, have you decided to marry me?" he demanded.
She shook her head, her face still buried in the violets.
"What's worrying you about it?" he asked.
"You, Monte," she answered.
"I? Well, that isn't much. I looked up the time-tables, and we could
take the six-ten to-night if you were ready."
"I could n't possibly be ready," she replied decidedly.
"To-morrow, then?"
When he insisted upon being definite, the proposition sounded a great
deal more absurd than when he allowed it to be indefinite. She was
still hesitating when Marie appeared.
"A telephone for mademoiselle," she announced.
Monte heard her startled exclamation from the next room. He hurried to
the door. She saw him, and, placing her hand over the telephone,
turned excitedly.
"It's Teddy again," she trembled.
"Let me talk to him," he commanded.
"He says he does n't believe in our--our engagement."
"We're to be married to-morrow?" he asked quickly.
[Illustration: "We're to be married to-morrow?"]
"Oh!"
"It's the only way to get rid of him."
"Then--"
"To-morrow?"
Catching her breath, she nodded.
He took the receiver.
"This is Covington," he said. "Miss Stockton and I are to be married
to-morrow. Get that? . . . Well, keep hold of it, because the moment
I 'm her husband--"
Following an oath at the other end, Monte heard the click of the
receiver as it was snapped up.
"That settles it very nicely," he smiled.
CHAPTER IX
BLUE AND GOLD
Marjory was to be married on June eighteenth, at eleven o'clock, in the
chapel of the English Congregational Church. At ten o'clock of that
day she was in her room before the mirror, trying to account for her
heightened color. Marie had just left her in despair and bewilderment,
after trying to make her look as bridelike as possible when she did not
wish to look bridelike. Marie had wished to do her hair in some absurd
new fashion for the occasion.
"But, Marie," she had explained, "nothing is to be changed. Therefore
why should I change my appearance?"
"Mademoiselle to be a bride--and nothing changed?" Marie had cried.
"Nothing about me; nothing about Mr. Covington. We are merely to be
married, that is all--as a matter of convenience."
"Mademoiselle will see," Marie had answered cryptically.
"You will see yourself," Marjory had laughed.
Eh bien! something was changed already, as she had only to look in the
mirror to observe. There was a deep flush upon her cheeks and her eyes
did not look quite natural. She saw, and seeing only made it worse.
Manifestly it was absurd of her to become excited now over a matter
that up to this point she had been able to handle so reasonably. It
was scarcely loyal to Monte. He had a right to expect her to be more
sensible.
He had put it well last night when he had remarked that for her to go
to a chapel to be married was no more serious than to go to an embassy
for a passport. She was merely to share with him the freedom that was
his as a birthright of his sex. In no other respect whatever was she
to be under any obligations to him. With ample means of her own, he
was simply giving her an opportunity to enjoy them unmolested--a
privilege which the world denied her as long as she remained unmarried.
In no way was he to be responsible for her or to her. He understood
this fully, and it was exactly what he himself desired.
She, in return for this privilege, was to make herself as entertaining
a traveling companion as possible. She was to be what she had been
these last few weeks.
Neither was making any sacrifice. That was precisely what they were
avoiding. That was the beauty of the arrangement. Instead of
multiplying cares and responsibilities, as ordinary folk did,--thereby
defeating the very object for which they married, a fuller and wider
freedom,--each was to do away with the few they already had as
individuals.
Therefore it seemed scarcely decent for Marie to speak of her as a
bride. Perhaps that accounted for the color. No sentiment was
involved here. This was what made the arrangement possible. Sentiment
involved caring; and, as Monte had once said, "It's the caring that
seems to make the trouble." That was the trouble with the Warrens.
How she cared--from morning till night, with her whole heart and soul
in a flutter--for Chic and the children. In a different way, Marjory
supposed, Teddy cared. This was the one thing that made him so
impossible. In another way, Peter Noyes cared.
She gave a quick start as she thought of Peter Noyes. She turned away
from the mirror as if--as if ashamed. She sprang to her feet, with an
odd, tense expression about her mouth. It was as if she were looking
into his dark, earnest eyes. Peter had always been so intensely in
earnest about everything. In college he had worked himself thin to
lead his class. In the law school he had graduated among the first
five, though he came out almost half blind. His record, however, had
won for him a place with a leading law firm in New York, where in his
earnest way he was already making himself felt. It was just this
quality that had frightened her. He had made love to her with his lips
set as if love were some great responsibility. He had talked of duty
and the joy of sacrifice until she had run away from him.
That had been her privilege. That had been her right. She had been
under no obligation to him then; she was under no obligation to him
now. Her life was hers, to do with as she saw fit. He had no business
to intrude himself, at this of all times, upon her.
Not daring to look in the mirror again, she called Marie to adjust her
hat and veil.
"It is half past ten, Marie," she announced nervously. "I--I think
Monsieur Covington must be waiting for us."
"Yes, mademoiselle."
Her ears caught at the word.
"Marie."
"Yes, mademoiselle."
"I wish--even after this--to have you always address me as
mademoiselle."
"But that--"
"It is my wish."
It was a blue-and-gold morning, with the city looking as if it had
received a scrubbing during the night. So too did Monte, who was
waiting below for her. Clean-shaven and ruddy, in a dark-gray morning
coat and top hat, he looked very handsome, even with his crippled arm.
And quite like a bridegroom! For a moment he made her wish she had
taken Marie's advice about her hair. She was in a brown traveling suit
with a piquant hat that made her look quite Parisienne--though her low
tan shoes, tied with big silk bows at her trim ankles, were distinctly
American.
Monte was smiling.
"You are n't afraid?" he asked.
"Of what, Monte?"
"I don't know. We 're on our way."
She took a long look at his steady blue eyes. They braced her like
wine.
"You must never let me be afraid," she answered.
"Then--en avant!" he called.
In a way, it was a pity that they could not have been married out of
doors. They should have gone into a garden for the ceremony instead of
into the subdued light of the chapel. Then, too, it would have been
much better had the Reverend Alexander Gordon been younger. He was a
gentle, saintly-looking man of sixty, but serious--terribly serious.
He had lived long in Paris, but instead of learning to be gay he had
become like those sad-faced priests at Notre Dame. Perhaps if he had
understood better the present circumstances he would have entered into
the occasion instead of remaining so very solemn.
As Marjory shook hands with him she lost her bright color. Then, too,
he had a voice that made her think again of Peter Noyes. In sudden
terror she clung to Monte's arm, and during the brief ceremony gave her
responses in a whisper.
Peter Noyes himself could not have made of this journey to the embassy
a more trying ordeal. A ring was slipped upon the fourth finger of her
left hand. A short prayer followed, and an earnest "God bless you, my
children," which left her feeling suffocated. She thought Monte would
never finish talking with him--would never get out into the sunshine
again. When he did, she shrank away from the glare of the living day.
Monte gave a sigh of relief.
"That's over, anyhow," he said.
Hearing a queer noise behind him, he turned. There stood Marie,
sniffling and wiping her eyes.
"Good Heavens," he demanded, "what's this?"
Marjory instantly moved to the girl's side.
"There--there," she soothed her gently; "it's only the excitement,
n'est ce pas?"
"Yes, madame; and you know I wish you all happiness."
"And me also?" put in Monte.
"It goes without saying that monsieur will be happy."
He thrust some gold-pieces into her hand.
"Then drink to our good health with your friends," he suggested.
Calling a taxicab, he assisted her in; but before the door closed
Marjory leaned toward her and whispered in her ear:--
"You will come back to the hotel at six?"
"Yes, madame."
So Marie went off to her cousins, looking in some ways more like a
bride than her mistress.
Marjory preferred to walk. She wanted to get back again to the mood of
half an hour ago. She must in some way get Peter Noyes out of her
mind. So quite aimlessly they moved down the Avenue Montaigne, and
Monte waved his hand at the passing people.
"Now," he announced, "you are none of anybody's business."
"Is that true, Monte?" Marjory asked eagerly.
"True as preaching."
"And no one has any right to scold me?"
"Not the slightest. If any one tries it, turn him over to me."
"That might not always be possible."
"You don't mean to say any one has begun this soon?"
He glared about as if to find the culprit.
"Don't look so fierce, Monte," she protested, with a laugh.
"Then don't you look so worried," he retorted.
Already, by his side, she was beginning to recover. A Parisian dandy
coming toward them stared rather overlong at her. An hour ago it would
have made her uneasy; now she felt like making a face at him.
She laughed a little.
"The minister was terribly serious, was n't he, Monte?"
"Too darned serious," he nodded. "But, you see, he did n't know. I
suppose the cross-your-throat, hope-to-die kind of marriage is serious.
That's the trouble with it."
"Yes; that's the trouble with it."
"I can see Chic coming down the aisle now, with his face chalk-white
and--"
"Don't," she broke in.
He looked down at her--surprised that she herself was taking this so
seriously.
"My comrade," he said, "what you need is to play a little."
"Yes," she agreed eagerly.
"Then where shall we go? The world is before you."
He was in exactly the mood to which she herself had looked forward--a
mood of springtime and irresponsibility. That was what he should be.
It was her right to feel like that also.
"Oh," she exclaimed, "I'd like to go to all the places I could n't go
alone! Take me."
"To the Cafe de Paris for lunch?"
She nodded.
"To the races afterward and to the Riche for dinner?"
"Yes, yes."
"So to the theater and to Maxim's?"
Her face was flushed as she nodded again.
"We're off!" he exclaimed, taking her arm.
It was an afternoon that left her no time to think. She was caught up
by the gay, care-free crowd and swept around in a dizzy circle. Yet
always Monte was by her side. She could take his arm if she became too
confused, and that always steadied her.
Then she was whirled back to the hotel and to Marie, with no more time
than was necessary to dress for dinner. She was glad there was no more
time. For at least to-day there must be no unfilled intervals. She
felt refreshed after her bath, and, to Marie's delight, consented to
attire herself in one of her newest evening gowns, a costume of silk
and lace that revealed her neck and arms. Also she allowed Marie to do
her hair as she pleased. That was a good sign, but Marie thought
madame's cheeks did not look like a good sign.
"I hope madame--"
"Have you so soon forgotten what I asked of you?" Marjory interrupted.
"I hope mademoiselle," Marie corrected herself, "has not caught a
fever."
"I should hope not," exclaimed Marjory. "What put that into your head?"
"Mademoiselle's cheeks are very hot."
Marjory brought her hand to her face. It did not feel hot, because her
hands were equally hot.
"It is nothing but the excitement that brings the color," she informed
Marie. "I have been living almost like a nun; and now--to get out all
at once takes away one's breath.
"Also being a bride."
"Marie!"
"Eh bien, madame--mademoiselle was married only this morning."
"You do not seem to understand," Marjory explained; "but it is
necessary that you should understand. Monsieur Covington is to me only
like--like a big brother. It is in order that he might be with me as a
big brother we went through the ceremony. People about here talk a
great deal, and I have taken his name to prevent that. That is all.
And you are to remain with me and everything is to go on exactly as
before, he in his apartments and we in ours. You understand now?"
At least, Marie heard.
"It is rather an amusing situation, is it not?" demanded Marjory.
"I--I do not know," replied Marie.
"Then in time you shall see. In the mean while, you might smile. Why
do you not smile?"
"I--I do not know," Marie replied honestly.
"You must learn how. It is necessary. It is necessary even to laugh.
Monsieur Covington laughed a great deal this afternoon."
"He--he is a man," observed Marie, as if that were some explanation.
"Eh bien--is it men alone who have the privilege of laughing?"
"I do not know," answered Marie; "but I have noticed that men laugh a
great deal more about some things than women."
"Then that is because women are fools," affirmed Marjory petulantly.
Though Marie was by no means convinced, she was ready to drop the
matter in her admiration of the picture her mistress made when properly
gowned. Whether she wished or not, madame, when she was done with her
this evening, looked as a bride should look. And monsieur, waiting
below, was worthy of her.
In his evening clothes he looked at least a foot taller than usual.
Marie saw his eyes warm as he slipped over madame's beautiful white
shoulders her evening wrap.
[Illustration: Monsieur's eyes warmed as he slipped the wrap over
madame's shoulders]
Before madame left she turned and whispered in Marie's ear.
"I may be late," she said; "but you will be here when I return."
"Yes, mademoiselle."
"Without fail?"
"Yes, mademoiselle."
Marie watched monsieur take his bride's arm as they went out the door,
and the thing she whispered to herself had nothing to do with madame at
all.
"Poor monsieur!" she said.
CHAPTER X
THE AFFAIR AT MAXIM'S
It was all new to Marjory. In the year and a half she had lived in
Paris with her aunt she had dined mostly in her room. Such cafes as
this she had seen only occasionally from a cab on her way to the opera.
As she stood at the entrance to the big room, which sparkled like a
diamond beneath a light, she was as dazed as a debutante entering her
first ballroom. The head waiter, after one glance at Monte, was bent
upon securing the best available table. Here was an American prince,
if ever he had seen one.
Had monsieur any choice?
Decidedly. He desired a quiet table in a corner, not too near the
music.
Such a table was immediately secured, and as Covington crossed the room
with Marjory by his side he was conscious of being more observed than
ever he had been when entering the Riche alone. His bandaged arm lent
him a touch of distinction, to be sure; but this served only to turn
eyes back again to Marjory, as if seeking in her the cause for it. She
moved like a princess, with her head well up and her dark eyes
brilliant.
"All eyes are upon you," he smiled, when he had given his order.
"If they are it's very absurd," she returned.
Also, if they were, it did not matter. That was the fact she most
appreciated. Ever since she had been old enough to observe that men
had eyes, it had been her duty to avoid those eyes. That had been
especially true in Paris, and still more especially true in the few
weeks she had been there alone.
Now, with Monte opposite her, she was at liberty to meet men's eyes and
study them with interest. There was no danger. It was they who turned
away from her--after a glance at Monte. It amused her to watch them
turn away; it gave her a new sense of power. But of one thing she was
certain: there was not a man in the lot with whom she would have felt
comfortable to be here as she felt comfortable with Monte.
Monte was having a very pleasant time of it. The thing that surprised
him was the way Marjory quickened his zest in old things that had
become stale. Here, for instance, she took him back to the days when
he had responded with a piquant tingle to the lights and the music and
the gay Parisian chatter, to the quick glance of smiling eyes where
adventure lurked. He had been content to observe without accepting the
challenges, principally because he lived mostly in the sunshine.
To-night, in a clean, decent way, he felt again the old tingle. But
this time it came from a different source. When Marjory raised her
eyes to his, the lights blazed as brilliantly as if a hundred new ones
had been lighted; the music mixed with his blood until his thoughts
danced.
With the coffee he lighted a cigarette and leaned back contentedly
until it was time to go.
As they went out of the room, he was aware that once again all eyes
were turned toward her, so that he threw back his shoulders a little
farther than usual and looked about with some scorn at those who had
with them only ordinary women.
The comedy at the Gymnase was sufficiently amusing to hold her
attention, and that was the best she could ask for; but Monte watched
it indifferently, resenting the fact that it did hold her attention.
Besides, there were too many people all about her here. For two hours
and a half it was as if she had gone back into the crowd. He was glad
when the final curtain rang down and he was able to take her arm and
guide her out.
"Maxim's next?" he inquired.
"Do you want to go?" she asked.
"It's for you to decide," he answered.
She was dead tired by now, but she did not dare to stop.
"All right," she said; "we'll go."
It was a harlequin crowd at Maxim's--a noisier, tenser, more hectic
crowd than at the Riche. The room was gray with smoke, and everywhere
she looked were gold-tipped wine bottles. Though it was still early,
there was much hysterical laughter and much tossing about of long
streamers of colored paper and confetti. As they entered she
instinctively shrank away from it. Had the waiter delayed another
second before leading them to a table, she would have gone out.
Monte ordered the wine he was expected to order, but Marjory scarcely
touched it to her lips, while he was content to watch it bubble in his
glass. He did not like to have her here, and yet it was almost worth
the visit to watch her eyes grow big, to watch her sensitive mouth
express the disgust she felt for the mad crowd, to have her
unconsciously hitch her chair nearer his.
"The worst of it is," he explained to her, "it's the outsiders who are
doing all this--Americans, most of them."
Suddenly, from behind them, a clear tenor voice made itself heard
through the din. The first notes were indistinct; but in a few seconds
the singer had the room to himself. Turning quickly, Marjory saw the
slender figure of Hamilton, swaying slightly, standing by a table, his
eyes leveled upon hers. He was singing "The Rosary"--singing it as
only he, when half mad, could sing it.
She clutched Monte's hand as he half rose from his seat.
"Please," she whispered, "it's best to sit still."
Stronger and stronger the plaintive melody fell from his lips, until
finally the orchestra itself joined. Women strained forward, and
half-dazed men sat back and listened with bated breath. Even Monte
forgot for a moment the boldness that inspired Hamilton, and became
conscious only of Marjory's warm fingers within his. So, had the
singer been any one else, he would have been content to sit to the end.
But he knew the danger there. His only alternative, however, was to
rise and press through the enraptured crowd, which certainly would have
resented the interruption. It seemed better to wait, and go out during
the noisy applause that was sure to follow.
At the second verse Hamilton, still singing, came nearer. A path
opened before him, as before an inspired prophet. It was only Monte
who moved his chair slightly and made ready. Still there was nothing
he could do until the man committed some overt act. When Hamilton
concluded his song, he was less than two feet away. By then Monte was
on his feet. As the applause swept from every corner of the room,
Hamilton seized from a near-by table a glass of wine, and, raising it,
shouted a toast:--
"To the bride."
The crowd followed his eyes to the shrinking girl behind Monte. In
good humor they rose, to a man, and joined in, draining their glasses.
It was Monte's opportunity. Taking Marjory's arm, he started for the
door.
But Hamilton was madder than he had ever been. He ran forward,
laughing hysterically.
"Kiss the bride," he called.
This he actually attempted. Monte had only his left arm, and it was
not his strongest; but back of it he felt a new power. He took
Hamilton beneath the chin, and with a lurch the man fell sprawling over
a table among the glasses. In the screaming confusion that followed,
Monte fought his way to the door, using his shoulders and a straight
arm to clear a path. In another second he had lifted Marjory into a
cab.
Leaning forward, she clutched his arm as the cab jumped ahead.
"I'm sorry I had to make a scene," he apologized. "I should n't have
hit him, but--I saw red for a second."
She would never forget that picture of Monte standing by her side, his
head erect, his arm drawn back for the second blow which had proved
unnecessary. All the other faces surrounding her had faded into a
smoky background. She had been conscious of him alone, and of his
great strength. She had felt that moment as if his strength had
literally been hers also. She could have struck out, had it been
necessary.
"You did n't hurt your shoulder, did you?" she asked anxiously.
He did not know--it did not much matter. Had Hamilton actually
succeeded in reaching her lips, he would have torn his wounded arm from
the bandages and struck with that too. He had never realized until
then what sacred things her lips were. He had known them only as
beautiful. They were beautiful now as he looked down at them.
Slightly parted, they held his eyes with a strange, new fascination.
They were alive, those lips. They were warm and pulsating. He found
himself breathing faster because of them. He seemed, against his will,
to be bending toward them. Then, with a wrench, he tore himself free
from the spell, not daring to look at her again.
Leaving her to Marie at the door of her room, Monte went into his own
apartment. He threw open a window, and stood there in the dark with
the cool night breeze blowing in upon him. After Maxim's, the more
clean air the better; after what had followed in the cab, the more cool
air the better.
He was still confused by it; still frightened by it. For a moment he
had felt himself caught in the clutch of some power over which he had
no control. That was the startling truth that stood out most
prominently. He had been like one intoxicated--he who never before in
his life had lost a grip upon himself. That fact struck at the very
heart of his whole philosophy of life. Always normal--that had been
his boast; never losing his head over this thing or that. It was the
only way a man could keep from worrying. It was the only way a man
could keep sane. The moment you wanted anything like the devil, then
the devil was to pay. This evening he had proved that.
He went back to the affair at Maxim's. He should have known better
than to take her there, anyway. She did not belong in such a place.
She did not belong anywhere he had taken her to-day. To-morrow--but
all this was beside the point.
The question that he would most like to answer at this moment was
whether this last wild episode of Hamilton's was due to absinthe or to
that same weird passion which a few weeks before had led the man to
shoot. It had been beastly of Hamilton to try to reach her lips.
That, doubtless, was the absinthe. It robbed him of his senses. But
the look in the man's eyes when he sang, the awful hunger that burned
in them when he gave his mad toast--those things seemed to spring from
a different source. The man, in a room full of strangers, had seen
only her, had sung only to her. Monte doubted if the crazed fellow saw
even him. He saw no one but this one woman. That was madness--but it
did not come of absinthe. The absinthe may have caused the final utter
breakdown of Hamilton's self-control here and at Madame Courcy's--but
that the desire could be there without it Monte had twice proved to
himself that evening.
Once was when he had struck Hamilton. He alone knew that when he hit
that time it was with the lust to kill--even as Hamilton had shot to
kill. The feeling lasted only the fraction of a second--merely while
his fist was plunging toward Hamilton's chin. But, however brief, it
had sprung from within him--a blood-red, frenzied desire to beat down
the other man. At the moment he was not so much conscious of trying to
protect her as to rid himself of Hamilton.
The second mad moment had come in the cab, when he had looked down at
her lips. As the passion to kill left him, another equally strong
passion had taken its place. He had hungered for her lips--the very
lips Hamilton, a moment before, had attempted to violate. He who all
his life had looked as indifferently upon living lips as upon
sculptured lips had suddenly found himself in the clutch of a mighty
desire. For a second he had swayed under the temptation. He had been
ready to risk everything, because for a heart-beat or two nothing else
seemed to matter. In his madness, he had even dared think that
delicate, sensitive mouth trembled a like desire.
Even here in the dark, alone, something of the same desire returned.
He began to pace the room.
How she would have hated him had he yielded to that impulse! He
shuddered as he pictured the look of horror that would have leaped into
her dark eyes. Then she would have shrunk away frightened, and her
eyes would have grown cold--those eyes that had only so lately warmed
at all. Her face would have turned to marble--the face that only so
lately had relaxed.
She trusted him--trusted him to the extent of being willing to marry
him to save herself from the very danger with which he had threatened
her. Except that at the last moment he had resisted, he was no better
than Hamilton.
In her despair she had cried, "Why won't they let me alone?" And he
had urged her to come with him, so that she might be let alone. He was
to be merely her _camarade de voyage_--her big brother. Then, in less
than twelve hours, he had become like the others. He felt unfit to
remain in the next room to her--unfit to greet her in the morning. In
an agony of remorse, he clenched his fists.
He drew himself up shortly. A new question leaped to his brain. Was
this, then, love? The thought brought both solace and fresh terror.
It gave him at least some justification for his moment of temptation;
but it also brought vividly before him countless new dangers. If this
were love, then he must face day after day of this sort of thing. Then
he would be at the mercy of a passion that must inevitably lead him
either to Hamilton's plight or to Chic Warren's equally unenviable
position. Each man, in his own way, paid the cost: Hamilton, mad at
Maxim's; Chic pacing the floor, with beaded brow, at night. With these
two examples before him, surely he should have learned his lesson.
Against them he could place his own normal life--ten years of it
without a single hour such as these hours through which he was now
living.
That was because he had kept steady. Ambition, love, drunkenness,
gluttony--these were all excesses. His own father had desired mightily
to be governor of a State, and it had killed him; his grandfather had
died amassing the Covington fortune; he had friends who had died of
love, and others who had overdrunk and overeaten. The secret of
happiness was not to want anything you did not have. If you went
beyond that, you paid the cost in new sacrifices, leading again to
sacrifices growing out of those.
Monte lighted a cigarette and inhaled a deep puff. The thing for him
to do was fairly clear: to pack his bag and leave while he still
retained the use of his reasoning faculties. He had been swept off his
feet for an instant, that was all. Let him go on with his schedule for
a month, and he would recover his balance.
The suggestion was considerably simplified by the fact that it was not
necessary to consider Marjory in any way. He would be in no sense
deserting her, because she was in no way dependent upon him. She had
ample funds of her own, and Marie for company. He had not married her
because of any need she had for him along those lines. The protection
of his name she would still have. As Mrs. Covington she could travel
as safely without him as with him. Even Hamilton was eliminated. He
had received his lesson. Anyway, she would probably leave Paris at
once for Etois, and so be out of reach of Hamilton.
Monte wondered if she would miss him. Perhaps, for a day or so; but,
after all, she would have without him the same wider freedom she
craved. She would have all the advantages of a widow without the
necessity of admitting that her husband was dead. He would always be
in the background--an invisible guard. It was odd that neither she nor
he had considered that as an attractive possibility. It was decidedly
more practical than the present arrangement.
As for himself, he was ready to admit frankly that after to-day golf on
an English course would for a time be a bore. From the first sight of
her this morning until now, he had not had a dull moment. She had
taken him back to the days when his emotions had been quick to respond
to each day as a new adventure in life.
It was last winter in Davos that he had first begun to note the keen
edge of pleasure becoming the least bit dulled. He had followed the
routine of his amusements almost mechanically. He had been conscious
of a younger element there who seemed to crowd in just ahead of him.
Some of them were young ladies he remembered having seen with
pig-tails. They smiled saucily at him--with a confidence that
suggested he was no longer to be greatly feared. He could remember
when they blushed shyly if he as much as glanced in their direction.
His schedule had become a little too much of a schedule. It suggested
the annual tour of the middle-aged gentlemen who follow the spas and
drink of the waters.
He felt all those things now even more keenly than he had at the time.
Looking back at them, he gained a new perspective that emphasized each
disagreeable detail. But he had only to think of Marjory as there with
him and--presto, they vanished. Had she been with him at Davos--better
still, were she able to go to Davos with him next winter--he knew with
what joy she would sit in front of him on the bob-sled and take the
breathless dip of the Long Run. He knew how she would meet him in the
morning with her cheeks stung into a deep red by the clean cold of the
mountain air. She would climb the heights with him, laughing. She
would skate with him and ski with him, and there would be no one
younger than they.
Monte again began to pace his room. She must go to Davos with him next
winter. He must take her around the whole schedule with him. She must
go to England and golf with him, and from there to his camp. She would
love it there. He could picture her in the woods, on the lake, and
before the camp-fire, beneath the stars.
From there they would go on to Cambridge for the football season. She
would like that. As a girl she had been cheated of all the big games,
and he would make up for it. So they would go on to New York for the
holidays. He had had rather a stupid time of it last year. He had
gone down to Chic's for Christmas, but had been oppressed by an
uncomfortable feeling that he did not belong there. Mrs. Chic had been
busy with so many presents for others that he had felt like old
Scrooge. He had made his usual gifts to relatives, but only as a
matter of habit. With Marjory with him, he would be glad to go
shopping as Chic and Mrs. Chic did. He might even go on to
Philadelphia with her and look up some of the relatives he had lately
been avoiding.
Where in thunder had his thoughts taken him again? He put his head in
his hands. He had carried her around his whole schedule with him just
as if this were some honest-to-God marriage. He had done this while
she lay in the next room peacefully sleeping in perfect trust.
She must never know this danger, nor be further subjected to it. There
was only one safe way--to take the early train for Calais without even
seeing her again.
Monte sat down at the writing-desk and seized a pen.
_Dear Marjory_ [he began]: Something has come up unexpectedly that
makes it necessary for me to take an early train for England. I can't
tell how long I shall be gone, but that of course is not important. I
hope you will go on to Etois, as we had planned; or, at any rate, leave
Paris. Somehow, I feel that you belong out under the blue sky and not
in town.
He paused a moment and read over that last sentence. Then he scratched
it out. Then he tore up the whole letter.
What he had to say should be not written. He must meet her in the
morning and tell her like a man.
CHAPTER XI
A CANCELED RESERVATION
Though it was late when he retired, Monte found himself wide awake at
half past seven. Springing from bed, he took his cold tub, shaved, and
after dressing proceeded to pack his bags. The process was simple; he
called the hotel valet, gave the order to have them ready as soon as
possible, and went below. From the office he telephoned upstairs to
Marie, and learned that madame would meet him in the breakfast-room at
nine. This left him a half-hour in which to pay his bill at the hotel,
order a reservation on the express to Calais, and buy a large bunch of
fresh violets, which he had placed on the breakfast table--a little
table in a sunshiny corner.
Monte was calmer this morning than he had been the night before. He
was rested; the interval of eight hours that had passed since he last
saw her gave him, however slight, a certain perspective, while his
normal surroundings, seen in broad daylight, tended to steady him
further. The hotel clerk, busy about his uninspired duties; the
impassive waiters in black and white; the solid-looking Englishmen and
their wives who began to make their appearance, lent a sense of
unreality to the events of yesterday.
Yet, even so, his thoughts clung tenaciously to the necessity of his
departure. In a way, the very normality of this morning world
emphasized that necessity. He recalled that it was to just such a day
as this he had awakened, yesterday. The hotel clerk had been standing
exactly where he was now, sorting the morning mail, stopping every now
and then with a troubled frown to make out an indistinct address. The
corpulent porter in his blue blouse stood exactly where he was now
standing, jealously guarding the door. Vehicles had been passing this
way and that on the street outside. He had heard the same undertone of
leisurely moving life--the scuffling of feet, the closing of doors,
distant voices, the rumble of traffic. Then, after this lazy prelude,
he had been swept on and on to the final dizzy climax.
That must not happen again. At this moment he knew he had a firm grip
on himself--but at this moment yesterday he had felt even more secure.
There had been no past then. That seemed a big word to use for such
recent events covering so few hours; and yet it was none too big. It
covered nothing less than the revelation of a man to himself. If that
process sometimes takes years, it is none the less significant if it
takes place in a day.
"Good-morning, Monte."
He turned quickly--so quickly that she started in surprise.
"Is anything the matter?" she asked.
She was in blue this morning, and wore at an angle a broad-brimmed hat
trimmed with black and white. He thought her eyes looked a trifle
tired. He would have said she had not slept well.
"I--I didn't know you were down," he faltered.
The interval of six hours upon which he had been depending vanished
instantly. To-day was but the continuation of yesterday. As he moved
toward the breakfast-room at her side, the outside world disappeared as
by magic, leaving only her world--the world immediately about her,
which she dominated. This room which she entered by his side was no
longer merely the salle-a-manger of the Normandie. He was conscious of
no portion of it other than that which included their table. All the
sunshine in the world concentrated into the rays that fell about her.
He felt this, and yet at the same time he was aware of the absurdity of
such exaggeration. It was the sort of thing that annoyed him when he
saw it in others. All those newly married couples he used to meet on
the German liners were afflicted in this same way. Each one of them
acted as if the ship were their ship, the ocean their ocean, even the
blue sky and the stars at night their sky and their stars. When he was
in a good humor, he used to laugh at this; when in a bad humor, it
disgusted him.
"Monte," she said, as soon as they were seated, "I was depending upon
you this morning."
She studied him a second, and then tried to smile, adding quickly:--
"I don't like you to disappoint me like this."
"What do you mean?" he asked nervously.
She frowned, but it was at herself, not at him. It did not do much
except make dimples between her brows.
"I lay awake a good deal last night--thinking," she answered.
"Good Lord!" he exclaimed. "You ought n't to have done that!"
"It was n't wise," she admitted. "But I looked forward to the
daylight--and you--to bring me back to normal."
"Well, here we are," he hastened to assure her. "I had the sun up
ready for you several hours ago."
"You--you look so serious."
She leaned forward.
"Monte," she pleaded, "you must n't go back on me like that--now. I
suppose women can't help getting the fidgets once in a while and
thinking all sorts of things. I was tired. I 'm not used to being so
very gay. And I let myself go a little, because I thought in the
morning I 'd find you the same old Monte. I 've known you so long, and
you always _have_ been the same."
"It was a pretty exciting day for both of us," he tried to explain.
"How for you?"
"Well, to start with, one does n't get married every morning."
He saw her cheeks flush. Then she drew back.
"I think we ought to forget that as much as possible," she told him.
Here was his opportunity. The way to forget--the only way--was for him
to continue with his interrupted schedule to England, and for her to go
on alone to Etois. It was not too late for that--if he started at
once. Surely it ought to be the matter of only a few weeks to undo a
single day. Let him get the tang of the salt air, let him go to bed
every night dog-tired physically, let him get out of sight of her eyes
and lips, and that something--intangible as a perfume--that emanated
from her, and doubtless he would be laughing at himself as heartily as
he had laughed at others.
But he could not frame the words. His lips refused to move. Not only
that, but, facing her here, it seemed a grossly brutal thing to do.
She looked so gentle and fragile this morning as, picking up the
violets, she half hid her face in them.
"You mean we ought to go back to the day before yesterday?" he asked.
"In our thoughts," she answered.
"And forget that we are--"
She nodded quickly, not allowing him to finish.
"Because," she explained, "I think it must be that which is making you
serious. I don't know you that way. It is n't you. I 've seen you
all these years, wandering around wherever your fancy took
you--care-free and smiling. I've always envied you, and now--I thought
you were just going to keep right on, only taking me with you. Is n't
that what we planned?"
"Yes," he nodded. "We started yesterday."
"I shall never forget that part of yesterday," she said.
"It was n't so bad, except for Hamilton."
"It was n't so bad even with Hamilton," she corrected. "I don't think
I can ever be afraid of him again."
"Then it was n't he that bothered you last night?" he asked quickly.
"No," she answered.
"It--it was n't I?"
She laughed uneasily.
"No, Monte; because you were just yourself yesterday."
He wondered about that. He wondered, if he placed before her all the
facts, including the hours after he left her, if she would have said
that. Here was his second opportunity to tell her what he had planned.
If he did not intend to go on, he should speak now. To-morrow it would
be too late. By noon it would be too late. By the time they finished
their breakfast, it would be too late.
He met her eyes. They were steady as planets. They were honest and
clear and clean and confident. They trusted him, and he knew it. He
took a deep breath and leaned forward. Impulsively she leaned across
the table and placed her hand upon his.
"Dear old Monte," she breathed.
It was too late--now! He saw her in a sort of mist of dancing golden
motes. He felt the steady throb of her pulse.
She withdrew her hand as quickly as she had given it. It was as if she
did not dare allow it to remain there. It was that which made him
smile with a certain confidence of his own.
"What we'd better do," he said, "is to get out of Paris. I'm afraid
the pace here is too hot for us."
"To Etois?" she asked.
"That's as good a place as any. Could you start this afternoon?"
"If you wish."
"The idea is to move on as soon as you begin to think," he explained,
with his old-time lightness. "Of course, the best way is to walk. If
you can't walk--why, the next best thing--"
He paused a moment to consider a new idea. It was odd that it had
never occurred to him before.
"I have it!" he continued. "We'll go to Etois by motor. It's a
beautiful drive down there. I made the trip alone three years ago in a
car I owned. We'll take our time, putting up at the little villages
along the way. We'll let the sun soak into us. We'll get away from
people. It's people who make you worry. I have a notion it will be
good for us both. This Hamilton episode has left us a bit morbid.
What we need is something to bring us back to normal."
"I'd love it," she fell in eagerly. "We'll just play gypsy."
"Right. Now, what you want to do is to throw into a dress-suitcase a
few things, and we'll ship the trunks by rail to Nice. All you need is
a toothbrush, a change of socks, and--"
"There's Marie," she interrupted.
"Can't we ship her by rail too?"
"No, Monte," she answered, with a decided shake of her head.
"But, hang it all, people don't go a-gypsying with French maids!"
"Why not?" she demanded.
She asked the question quite honestly. He had forgotten Marie utterly
until this moment, and she seemed to join the party like an intruder.
Always she would be upon the back seat.
"Wouldn't you feel freer without her?" he asked.
"I should n't feel at all proper," she declared.
"Then we might just as well not have been married."
"Only," she laughed, "if we had n't taken that precaution it would n't
have been proper for me to go, even with Marie."
"I'm glad we've accomplished something, anyhow," he answered
good-naturedly.
"We've accomplished a great deal," she assured him. "Yesterday morning
I could n't--at this time--have done even the proper things and felt
proper. Oh, you don't know how people look at you, and how that look
makes you feel, even when you know better. I could n't have sat here
at breakfast with you and felt comfortable. Now we can sit here and
plan a wonderful trip like this. It's all because you're just Monte."
"And you just you!"
"Only I don't count for anything. It makes me feel even more selfish
than I am."
"Don't count?" he exclaimed. "Why--"
He stifled the words that sprang to his lips. It was only because she
thought she did not count that she was able to feel comfortable. Once
let her know that she counted as at that moment she did count to him,
and even what little happiness he was able to bring her would vanish.
He would be to her then merely one of the others--even as he was to
himself.
He rose abruptly.
"I must see about getting a machine," he said. "I want to start this
afternoon if possible."
"I'll be ready," she agreed.
As they went out to the office, the clerk stepped up to him.
"I have secured the reservation, monsieur," he announced.
"Please cancel it," replied Monte.
"Reservation?" inquired Marjory.
"On the Calais express--for a friend of mine who has decided not to
go," he answered.
CHAPTER XII
A WEDDING JOURNEY
Monte made an extravagant purchase: a new high-powered touring car
capacious enough for a whole family--his idea being, that the roomier
the car, the less Marie would show up in it. On the other hand, if he
cared to consider her in that way, Marie would be there as much for his
protection as Marjory's. The task that lay ahead of him this next week
was well defined; it was to get back to normal. He had diagnosed his
disease--now he must cure it. It would have been much easier to have
done this by himself, but this was impossible. He must learn to gaze
steadily into her eyes, while gazing into them; he must learn to look
indifferently upon her lips, with her within arm's reach of him. Here
was a man's job.
He was not even to have the machine to occupy his attention; for there
was no time to secure a license, and so he must take with him a
chauffeur. He was fortunate in being able to secure one on the
spot--Louis Santerre, a good-looking lad with the best of
recommendations. He ordered him to be at the hotel at three.
Thus, in less than an hour from the time he entered the salesroom,
Monte had bought and paid for his car, hired his man, given orders for
certain accessories, and left, with Monsieur Mansart bowing him out and
heartily wishing that all his customers were of this type.
There were, however, several little things that Monte still wished to
purchase--an automobile coat and cap, for one thing; also some rugs.
These he found in a near-by store. It was as he was leaving that the
clerk--who, it seems, must have had an eye--noticed the shiny new gold
ring upon Monte's left hand.
"Madame is well supplied?" he inquired.
"Madame? Who the devil is madame?" demanded Monte.
"Pardon, monsieur," replied the clerk in some confusion, fearing he had
made a grave mistake. "I did not know monsieur was traveling alone."
Then it was Monte's turn to show signs of confusion. It was quite true
he was not traveling alone. It was the truest thing he knew just then.
"What is necessary for a lady traveling by motor?" he inquired.
The clerk would take great pleasure in showing him in a department
devoted to that very end. It was after one bewildering glance about
the counters that he became of the opinion that his question should
have been: "What is it that a lady does not wear when traveling by
motor?" He saw coats and bonnets and goggles and vanity boxes and
gloves, to mention only a few of those things he took in at first
glance.
"We are leaving in some haste," explained Monte, "so I'm afraid she has
none of these things. Would n't the easiest way be for you to give me
one of each?"
That indeed would be a pleasure. Did monsieur know the correct size?
Only in a general way--madame was not quite his height and weighed in
the neighborhood of one hundred and fifty pounds. That was enough to
go upon for outside garments. Still there remained a wide choice of
style and color. In this Monte pleased himself, pointing his stick
with sure judgment at what took his fancy, as this and the other thing
was placed before him. It was a decidedly novel and a very pleasant
occupation.
In this way he spent the best part of another hour, and made a payment
in American Express orders of a considerable sum. That, however,
involved nothing but tearing from the book he always carried as many
orders for twenty-five dollars as most nearly approximated the sum
total. The articles were to be delivered within one hour to "Madame M.
Covington, Hotel Normandie."
Monte left the store with a sense of satisfaction, tempered a trifle by
an uncomfortable doubt as to just how this presumption on his part
would be received. However, he was well within his rights. He held
sturdily to that.
With still two hours before he could return,--for he must leave her
free until luncheon,--he went on to the Champs Elysees and so to the
Bois. He still dwelt with pleasure upon the opportunity that had been
offered him to buy those few things for her. It sent him along briskly
with a smile on his face. It did more; it suggested a new idea. The
reason he had been taking himself so seriously was that he had been
thinking too much about himself and not enough about her. The simple
way out of that difficulty was from now on not to consider himself at
all. After all, what happened to him did not much matter, as long as
it did not affect her. His job from now on was to make her happy.
For the rest of his walk he kept tight hold of that idea, and came back
to the hotel with a firm grip on it. He called to her through the door
of her room:--
"How you making it?"
"Pretty well," came her voice. "Only I went shopping and bought all my
things--including a coat for you. Then, when I return, I find a whole
boxful from you."
"All my efforts wasted!" he exclaimed.
"No, Monte," she replied quickly. "I could n't allow that,
because--well, because it was so thoughtful of you. So I kept the coat
and bonnet you selected--and a few other things. I've just sent Marie
out to return the rest."
She had kept the coat and bonnet that he selected! What in thunder was
there about that to make a man feel so confoundedly well satisfied?
They left the hotel at three, and rode that day as far as a country inn
which took their fancy just before coming into Joigny. It was, to
Marjory, a wonderful ride--a ride that made her feel that with each
succeeding mile she was leaving farther and farther behind her every
care she had ever had in the world. It was a ride straight into the
heart of a green country basking sleepily beneath blue skies; of
contented people going about their pleasant tasks; of snug, fat farms
and snug little houses, with glimpses of an occasional chateau in the
background.
When Monte held out his hand to assist her down, she laughed
light-heartedly, refreshed in body and soul. For Monte had been
himself ever since they started--better than himself. He had humored
her every mood, allowing her to talk when she had felt like talking, or
to sit back with her eyes half closed when she wished to give herself
up to lazy content. Often, too, he had made her laugh with his absurd
remarks--laugh spontaneously, as a child laughs. She had never seen
him in such good humor, and could not remember when she herself had
been in such good humor.
The rays of the sun were falling aslant as she stepped out, and the
western sky was aglow with crimson and purple and pink. It was a
drowsy world, with sounds grown distant and the perfume and color of
the flowers grown nearer. At the door of the inn, which, looked as if
it must have been standing right there in the days of dashing
cavaliers, the proprietor and his wife were obsequiously bowing a
welcome. It was not often that the big machines deigned to rest here.
Monte stepped toward them.
"Madame desires to rest here for the night, if accommodations may be
secured," he said.
For the night? Mon Dieu! The proprietor had reckoned upon only a
temporary sojourn--for a bottle of wine, perhaps. He had never
entertained such a host as this. How many rooms would be required?
"Four," answered Monte.
"Let me see; monsieur and madame could be put in the front room."
Monte shook his head.
"Madame will occupy the front room alone," he informed him.
"Eh? Oh, I understand; a sister. That was a curious mistake. Eh
bien, madame in the front room. Monsieur in the room to the right.
The maid in the room on the back. But there is the chauffeur."
There was no room left for him, or for the machine either.
"Then he can go on to Joigny," announced Monte.
So Louis went on, and in less than five minutes the others were safely
sorted out and tucked away in their respective rooms.
"We ought to get out and see the sun set," Monte called to Marjory as
she waved him an adieu at her door.
"I'll be down in ten minutes," she nodded.
There is a princess latent in every woman. She makes her appearance
early, and too often vanishes early. Not many women have the good
fortune to see her--except perhaps for a few brief moments--after
seventeen. But, however, far in the background, she remains as at
least a romantic possibility as long as any trace of romance itself
remains. She is a languid, luxury-loving creature, this princess; an
Arabian Nights princess of silks and satins and perfumed surroundings.
Through half-closed eyes she looks out upon a world of sunshine and
flowers, untroubled as the fairy folk. Every one does her homage, and
she in her turn smiles graciously, and there is nought else for her to
do except to rest and be amused.
For a moment, here in the twilight, this princess returned to Marjory.
As she sat before the mirror, doing over her hair, she held her chin a
little higher at the thought and smiled at herself contentedly. She
used to do just this--and feel ashamed of herself afterward--long, long
ago, after she first met Monte at the Warrens'. For it was he who then
had been her gallant knight, without which no one may be a fairy-book
princess. He had just finished his college course, and eager-eyed was
about to travel over the wide world. He was big and buoyant and
handsome, and even more irresponsible then than now.
She recalled how one evening they sat alone upon the porch of the
Warren house until late, and he had told her of his proposed journey.
She had listened breathlessly, with her chin in her hands and her eyes
big. When she came in, Mrs. Warren had placed an arm about her and
looked significantly at her flushed cheeks and said gently:--
"Be careful, my dear. Don't you let that careless young prince take
away your heart with him. Remember, he has not yet seen the world."
He had sailed away for a year and a day soon after this; and, perhaps
because he was safely out of her life, she had allowed herself more
liberty with him than otherwise she would have done. At any rate, that
year she was a princess and he her prince.
Now, to-night, he came back for a little. It was the twilight, which
deals gently with harsh realities, and the perfume of the flowers
floating in at the open window, and the old room, doubtless. Only
yesterday he called her "Your Highness," and she had not responded.
There in the Cafe Riche none of her old dreams had returned. Perhaps
it was because all her surroundings there had been too grossly real.
That was no setting for a fairy prince, and a fairy prince was, of
course, all he had ever been or was now. He was only for the world
when the sun was low.
Outside her window she heard a voice:--
"Oh, Marjory."
She started. It was her prince calling. It was bewildering to have
dreams suddenly blended with life itself. It was bewildering also to
have the thoughts of seventeen suddenly blended with the realities of
twenty-seven. She remained silent, breathing gently, as if afraid of
being discovered.
"Marjory," he called again.
"Coming," she answered, with a quiet intake of breath.
Hatless and with a silk shawl over her shoulders, she hurried to where
he was waiting. He too was hatless, even as he had been that night
long ago when he had sat beside her. Something, too, of the same light
of youth was in his eyes now as then.
Side by side they strolled through the quaint village of stone houses
and to the top of a near-by hill, where they found themselves looking
down upon Joigny outlined against the hazy tints of the pink-and-gold
horizon.
"Oh, it's beautiful!" she exclaimed enthusiastically. "It's a fairy
world."
"Better; it's a real world," he answered.
"I doubt it, Monte," she disagreed, with a touch of regret. "It's too
perfect."
It would not last. It would begin to fade in a moment, even as her
fairy prince would fade and become just Monte. She knew from the past.
Besides, it was absolutely essential that this should not last. If it
did--why, that would be absurd. It would be worse. It made her
uncomfortable even to imagine this possibility for a moment, thus
bringing about the very condition most unfavorable for fairy princes.
For, if there is one advantage they have over ordinary princes, it is
the gift of keeping their princesses always happy and content.
Somewhat shyly she glanced up at Monte. He was standing with his
uninjured hand thrust into the pocket of his Norfolk jacket, staring
fixedly at the western sky as if he had lost himself there. She
thought his face was a bit set; but, for all that, he looked this
moment more as she had known him at twenty-one than when he came back
at twenty-two. After his travels of a year he had seemed to her so
much wiser than she that he had instantly become her senior. She had
listened to him as to a man of the world, with something of awe. It
was more difficult then to have him for a prince, because princes,
though brave and adventurous, must not be too wise.
She smiled as she realized that, as he stood there now, Monte did not
in the least inspire her with awe or fear or a sense of superior
wisdom. The mellow light softened his features and the light breeze
had tousled his hair, so that for all his years told he might have been
back in his football days. He had been like that all the afternoon.
A new tenderness swept over her. She would have liked to reach up her
hand and smooth away the little puzzled frown between his brows. She
almost dared to do it. Then he turned.
"You're right," he said, with a shrug of his shoulders. "It is n't
real. See, it's fading now."
The pink clouds were turning a dull gray.
"Perhaps it's better it should," she suggested. "If it stayed like
that all the time, we'd get so used to it we would n't see it."
He took out his watch.
"I ordered supper to be ready in a half hour," he said. "We'd better
get back."
She fell in step by his side--by the side of her fairy prince. For,
oddly enough, he had not begun to fade as the sunset faded. The
twilight was deepening into the hushed night--a wonderful night that
was like beautiful music heard at a distance. It left her scarcely
conscious of moving. In the sky the stars were becoming clearer; in
the houses, candles were beginning to twinkle. It was difficult to
tell which were which--as if the sky and the earth were one.
There was no abrupt change even when they came into the inn, where near
the open window a table had been set and two candles were burning.
"Oh," she exclaimed again, "here is another bit of fairy world."
He laughed abruptly.
"I hope the supper is real, anyhow," he said.
He spoke as if making a conscious effort to break the spell. It made
her glance up as he seated her; but all she thought of then was that
she would like to smooth back his hair. The spell was not broken.
Chops and cauliflower and a salad were served to them, with patties of
fresh butter and crusted white bread. She was glad to see him eat
heartily. She prepared his salad with a dash of salt and pepper, a
little vinegar and oil. That much, at least, she was at liberty to do
for him. It gave her a new pleasure.
"Monte," she asked, "do you suppose it's always as nice as this here?"
"If it were, would you like to stay?" he asked.
She thought a moment over that. Would it be possible just to drift on
day after day, with Monte always a fairy prince beside her? She
glanced up and met his eyes.
"I--I guess it's best to follow our schedule," she decided, with a
little gasp.
CHAPTER XIII
A WEDDING JOURNEY (_continued_)
Through the golden sunshine and beneath the blue sky, they went on the
next day, until with a nod she chose her place to stop for lunch, until
with another nod, as the sun was getting low, she chose her place to
stop for the night. This time they did not ask to know even the name
of the village. It was his suggestion.
"Because," he explained, "that makes it seem as if we were trying to
get somewhere. And we are n't, are we?"
"Wherever we are, we are," she nodded gayly.
"It is n't even important that we get to Etois," he insisted.
"Not in the slightest," she agreed. "Only, if we keep on going we'll
get to the sea, won't we?"
"Then we can either skirt the shore or take a boat and cross the sea.
It's all one."
"All one! You make me feel as if I had wings."
"Then you're happy?"
"Very, very happy, Monte. And you?"
"Yes," he answered abruptly.
She had no reason to doubt it. That night, as she sat alone in her
room, she reviewed this day in order to satisfy herself on this point;
for she felt a certain obligation. He had given to her so generously
that the least she in her turn could do was to make sure that he was
comfortable and content. That, all his life, was the most he had asked
for. It was the most he asked for now. He must wake each morning free
of worries, come down to a good breakfast and find his coffee hot, have
a pleasant time of it during the day without being bored, and end with
a roast and salad and later a good bed. These were simple
desires--thoroughly wholesome, normal desires. With the means at his
command, with the freedom from restraint that had been his ever since
he left college, it was a great deal to his credit that he had been
able to retain such modest tastes. He had been at liberty to choose
what he wished, and he had chosen decently.
This morning she had come down early and looked to his coffee herself.
It was a slight thing, but she had awakened with a desire to do
something positive and personal for him. She had been satisfied when
he exclaimed, without knowing the part she played in it:--
"This coffee is bully!"
It had started the day right and given her a lightness of spirit that
was reflected in her talk and even in her smiles. She had smiled from
within. She was quite sure that the day had been a success, and that
so far, at any rate, Monte had not been either bored or worried.
Sitting there in the dark, she felt strangely elated over the fact.
She had been able to send her fairy prince to his sleep contented. It
gave her a motherly feeling of a task well done. After all, Monte was
scarcely more than a boy.
Her thoughts went back to the phrase he had used at the end of the
day's journey.
"We aren't getting anywhere, are we?" he had asked.
At the moment she had not thought he meant anything more than he said.
He seldom did. It was restful to know that she need never look for
hidden meanings in his chance remarks. He meant only that there was no
haste; that it made no difference when they reached this town or that.
They had no destination.
That was true, and yet the thought disturbed her a trifle. It did not
seem quite right for Monte to have no destination. He was worth
something more than merely to revolve in a circle. He should have a
Holy Grail. Give him something to fight for, and he would fight hard.
Twice to-day she had caught a light in his eyes that had suggested this
to her--a clean, white light that had hinted of a Monte with a
destination. But would not that destroy the very poise that made him
just Monte?
It was too puzzling a question for her own peace of mind. She turned
away from it and slowly began to take down her hair.
On and on they went the third day--straight on--with their destination
still hidden. That night, when again alone, she sat even longer by her
open window than she had yesterday, instead of going to bed and to
sleep, which would have been the sensible thing to do. In some ways
this had been rather a more exciting day than the others. Again she
had risen early and come down to order his coffee; but he too must have
risen early, for he had come upon her as she was giving her
instructions. It had been an embarrassing moment for her, and she had
tried to carry it off with a laugh. That she was not to do so
surprised her and added a still deeper flush to her cheeks.
"So this is the secret of my good coffee?" he asked.
"There is so very little I can do for you," she faltered.
"That is a whole lot more than I deserve," he answered.
However, he was pleased by this trivial attention, and she knew it. It
was an absurdly insignificant incident, and yet here she was recalling
it with something like a thrill. Not only that, but she recalled
another and equally preposterous detail of the day. She had dropped
her vanity-box in the car, and as they both stooped for it his cheek
had brushed hers. He laughed lightly and apologized--forgetting it the
next second. Eight hours later she dared remember it, like any
schoolgirl. Small wonder that she glanced about to make sure the room
was empty. It sent her to bed shamefaced.
The fourth day came, with the golden road still unfolding before them
and her fairy prince still beside her. Then the fifth day, and that
night they stopped within sight of the ocean. It came as a surprise to
both of them. It was as if, after all, they had reached a destination,
when as a matter of fact they had done nothing of the sort. It meant,
to be sure, that the next day would find them in Nice, which would end
their ride, because they intended to remain there for a day or two
until they arranged for a villa in Etois, which, being in the
mountains, they must reach afoot. But if she did not like it she had
only to nod and they could move on to somewhere else. There was
nothing final even about Etois.
That evening they walked by the shore of the sea, and Monte appeared
quieter than usual.
"I have wired ahead for rooms at the Hotel des Roses," he announced.
"Yes, Monte," she said.
"It's where I've stopped for ten years. The last time I was there I
found Edhart gone, and was very uncomfortable."
"You were as dependent upon him as that?" she asked.
"It was what lured me on to Paris--and you," he smiled.
"Then I must be indebted to Edhart also."
"I think it would be no more than decent to look up his grave and place
a wreath of roses there," he observed.
"But, Monte," she protested, "I should hate to imagine he had to give
up his life--for just this."
"At any rate, if he hadn't died I'm sure I should have kept to my
schedule," he said seriously.
"And then?"
"I should not have been here."
"You speak regretfully?" she asked.
He stopped abruptly and seized her arm.
"You know better," he answered.
For a moment she looked dizzily into his eyes. Then he broke the
tension by smiling.
"I guess we'd better turn back," he said below his breath.
It was evident that Monte was not quite himself at that moment. That
night she heard the roll of the ocean as she tried to sleep, and it
said many strange things to her. She did not sleep well.
The next morning they were on their way again, reaching the Hotel des
Roses at six in the afternoon. Henri was at the door to meet them.
Henri, he thought, had greatly improved since his last visit. Perhaps
Edhart, from his seat on high, had been instructing him. The man
seemed to understand better without being told what Monsieur Covington
desired. The apartments were ready, and it was merely a personal
matter between Monte and the garcon to have his trunk transferred from
the second floor to the third and Marie's trunk brought down from the
third to the second. Even Edhart might have been pardoned for making
this mistake in the distribution of the luggage, if not previously
informed.
That evening Marjory begged to be excused from dinner, and Monte dined
alone. He dined alone in the small salle-a-manger where he had always
dined alone, and where the last time he was here he had grown in an
instant from twenty-two to thirty-two. Now, in another instant, it was
as if he had gone back to twenty-two. It was even almost as if Edhart
had returned to life. The mellow glow of the long twilight tinted the
room just as it used to do. Across the boulevard he saw the
Mediterranean, languid and blue.
A thing that impressed Monte was how amazingly friendly every one
was--how amazingly friendly even the material objects were. His old
table in the corner had been reserved for him, but this time it had
been arranged for two. The empty chair opposite him was quite as
friendly as Marjory herself might have been. It kept him company and
humored his thoughts. It said, as plainly as it is possible for a
chair to speak:--
"Madame Covington is disappointed to think she could not join you this
evening, but you must remember that it is not to be expected of a woman
to stand these long journeys like a man. However, she will have
breakfast with you in the morning. That is something to look forward
to. In the meanwhile let me serve to remind you that she is
upstairs--upstairs in the room you used to occupy. Perhaps even at
this moment she is looking out the window at this same languid blue
sea. Being up there, she is within call. Should you need her--really
need her--you may be perfectly sure that she would come to you.
"That time you were ill here two years ago, you had rather a bad time
of it because there was no one to visit you except a few chance
acquaintances about whom you did not care. Well, it would not be like
that now. She would sit by your bed all night long and all day long,
too, if you permitted. She is that kind. So, you see, you are really
not dining alone to-night. I, though only an empty chair, am here to
remind you of that."
Felix, who was in charge of the salle-a-manger, hovered near Monte as
if he felt the latter to be his especial charge. He served as Monte's
right hand--the hand of the sling. He was very much disturbed because
madame refused her dinner, and every now and then thought of something
new that possibly might tempt her.
Every one else about the hotel was equally friendly, racking his brains
to find a way of serving Monte by serving madame. It made him feel
quite like those lordly personages who used to come here with a title
and turn the place topsy-turvy for themselves and for their women-folk.
He recalled a certain count of something who arrived with his young
wife and who in a day had half of Nice in his service. Monte felt like
him, only more so. There was a certain obsequiousness that the count
demanded which vanished the moment his back was turned; but the
interest of Felix and his fellows now was based upon something finer
than fear. Monte felt it had to do with Marjory herself, and
also--well, in a sense she was carrying a title too. She was, to these
others, a bride.
But it was a great relief to know that she was not the sort of bride of
which he had seen too many in the last ten years. It would be a
pleasure to show these fellows a bride who would give them no cause to
smile behind their hands. He would show them a bride who could still
conduct herself like a rational human being, instead of like a petulant
princess or a moon-struck school girl.
Monte lighted a cigarette and went out upon the Quai Massena for a
stroll. It was late in the season for the crowds. They had long since
adjourned to the mountains or to Paris. But still there were plenty
remaining. He would not have cared greatly had there been no one left.
It was a relief to have the shore to himself. He had formerly been
rather sensitive about being anywhere out of season. In fact, this was
the first time he had ever been here later than May. But the
difference was not so great as he had imagined it must be. Neither the
night sky nor the great turquoise mirror beneath it appeared out of
season.
Monte did not stray far. He walked contentedly back and forth for the
matter of an hour. He might have kept on until midnight, had it not
been for a messenger from the hotel who handed him a note.
Indifferently he opened it and read:
I've gone to the Hotel d'Angleterre. Please don't try to see me
to-night. Hastily,
MARJORY.
CHAPTER XIV
THE BRIDE RUNS AWAY
Henri, who was greatly disturbed, explained to Monte that madame came
downstairs shortly after monsieur left for his walk and asked for him.
Being told that monsieur had gone out, she too had gone out, wearing a
light shawl--to meet monsieur, as Henri supposed. In some fifteen
minutes madame had returned, appearing somewhat excited, if it were
permissible to say so. Thereupon she had given orders to have her
luggage and the luggage of her maid removed at once to the Hotel
d'Angleterre. Henri had assured her that if her rooms were not
suitable he would turn the house upside down to please her.
"No, no," she had answered; "it is not that. You are very kind, Henri."
He had then made so bold as to suggest that a messenger be sent out to
find monsieur.
"By all means," she had answered. "I will give you a note to take to
him."
She had sat down and written the note and Henri had dispatched it
immediately. But, also immediately, madame and her maid had left.
"I beg monsieur to believe that if there is anything--"
Monte waved the man aside, went to the telephone, and rang up the Hotel
d'Angleterre.
"I wish to know if a Madame Covington has recently arrived."
"Non, monsieur," was the response.
"Look here," said Monte sharply. "Make sure of that. She must have
reached there within fifteen minutes."
"We have had no arrivals here within that time except a Mademoiselle
Stockton and her maid."
"Eh?" snapped Monte. "Repeat that again."
"Mademoiselle Stockton," the clerk obeyed.
"She signed the register with that name?"
"But yes. If monsieur--"
"All right; thanks."
"You found her?" inquired Henri solicitously.
"Yes," nodded Monte, and went out into the night again.
There was nothing he could do--absolutely nothing. She had given her
orders, and they must be obeyed. He returned to the Quai Massena, to
the shore of the sea; but he walked nervously now, in a world that, as
far as he was concerned, was starless and colorless. He had thought at
first, naturally enough, that Hamilton was in some way concerned; but
he dismissed that now as wholly unplausible. Instead of running away,
in that case, she would have sent for him. It was decidedly more
likely that this was some strange whimsy springing from within herself.
In looking back at the last few days, he recalled now that upon several
occasions she had acted in a way not quite like herself. Last night,
for instance, she had been disturbed. Again, it was most unusual for
her not to dine with him. He had accepted her excuse that she was
tired; but now he blamed himself for not having seen through so
artificial an excuse, for not having detected that something else was
troubling her.
She had run away as if in fear. She had not dared even to talk over
with him the cause for her uneasiness. And he--blind fool that he
was--had not detected anything unusual. He had gone off mooning,
leaving her to fight her own fight. He had been so confoundedly
self-satisfied and content because she was here with him, where
heretofore he had always been alone, that he had gone stony blind to
her comfort. That was the crude fact.
However, accusing himself did not bring him any nearer an explanation
of her strange conduct. She would not have left him unless she had
felt herself in some danger. If Hamilton were eliminated, who then
remained by whom she could feel menaced? Clearly it must be himself.
The conclusion was like a blow in the face. It stunned him for a
moment, and then left his cheeks burning. If she had scuttled away
from him like a frightened rabbit, it could be for only one reason;
because he had not been able to conceal the truth. And he had thought
that he had succeeded in keeping the danger to himself.
He turned in the direction of the Hotel d'Angleterre. He did not
intend to try to see her. He wished only to be a little nearer.
Surely there was no harm in that. The boulevard had become deserted,
and he was terribly lonesome out here alone. The old black dog that
had pounced upon him in Paris came back and hugged him closer.
He squared his shoulders. He must shake himself free of that. The
thing to keep in mind was that he did not count in this affair. She
alone must be considered. If he had frightened her, he must find some
way of reassuring her. He must take a tighter grip than ever upon
himself, face her to-morrow, and laugh away her fears. He must do
that, because he must justify her faith in him. That was all he had of
her--her faith in him. If he killed that, then she would vanish
utterly.
After this last week, to be here or anywhere else without her was
unthinkable. He must make her believe that he took even this new
development lightly. He must go to her in the morning as just Monte.
So, if he were very, very careful, he might coax her back a little way
into his life. That was not very much to hope for.
Monte was all wrong. From beginning to end, he was wrong. Marjory had
run away, not from him, but from some one else. When she left the
hotel she had been on her way to join monsieur, as Henri had correctly
surmised. From her window she had been watching him for the matter of
half an hour as he paced up and down the quay before the hotel. Every
time Monte disappeared from sight at the end of a lap, she held her
breath until he appeared again. Every time he appeared again, her
heart beat faster. He seemed such a lonely figure that her conscience
troubled her. He was so good, was Monte--so good and four-square.
She had left him to dine alone, and without a protest he had submitted.
That was like him; and yet, if he had only as much as looked his
disappointment, she would have dressed and come down. She had been
ready to do so. It was only the initial excitement that prompted her
at first to shut herself up. Coming to this hotel, where for ten years
he had been coming alone, was almost like going back into his life for
that length of time. Then, Monte had signed the register "Monsieur and
Madame Covington." With bated breath she had watched him do it.
After that the roses in her room and the attention of every one to her
as to a bride--all those things had frightened her at first. Yet she
knew they were bowing low, not to her, but to Madame Covington. This
was what made her ears burn. This was what made her seek the seclusion
of her room. She felt like an imposter, claiming honors that did not
belong to her. It made her so uncomfortable that she could not face
even Marie. She sent her off.
Sitting by the open window, she watched Monte as he walked alone, with
a queer little ache in her heart. How faithfully he had lived up to
his bargain! He had given her every tittle of the freedom she had
craved. In all things he had sought her wishes, asking nothing for
himself. It was she who gave the order for starting every morning, for
stopping at night. She chose this inn or that, as pleased her fancy.
She talked when she wished to talk, and remained silent when she
preferred. If, instead of coming to Nice and Etois, she had expressed
a desire to turn in some other direction, she knew he would merely have
nodded.
It was all one to him. East, west, north, or south--what was the odds?
Married or single--what was the odds?
So she also should have felt. With this big man by her side to guard
her and do her will, she should have been able to abandon herself
utterly to the delights of each passing hour--to the magic of the fairy
kingdom he had made for her. It was all she had asked for, and that
much it was her right to accept, if he chose to give it. She was
cheating no one. Monte himself would have been the first to admit
that. Therefore she should have been quite at peace with herself.
The fact remained, however, that each day since they had left Paris she
had found herself more and more at the mercy of strange moods;
sometimes an unusual and inexplicable exhilaration, such as that moment
last night when Monte had turned and seized her arm; sometimes an
unnatural depression, like that which now oppressed her. These had
been only intervals, to be sure. The hours between had been all she
had looked forward to--warm, basking hours of lazy content.
To-night she had been longer than ever before in recovering her
balance. She had expected to undress, go to bed, and so to sleep.
Perhaps it was the sight of Monte pacing up and down there alone that
prolonged her mood. Yet, not to see him, all that was necessary was to
close her eyes or to turn the other way. It should have been easy to
do this. Only it was not. She followed him back and forth. In some
ways, a bride could not have acted more absurdly.
At the thought she withdrew from the window in startled confusion.
Standing in the middle of the room, she stared about as if challenged
as to her right there by some unseen visitor. This would never do.
She was too much alone. She must go to Monte. He would set her right,
because he understood. She would take his arm, his strong, steady arm,
and walk a little way with him and laugh with him. That was what she
needed.
She hurried into her clothes, struggling nervously with hooks and
buttons as if there were need of haste. Then, throwing a light shawl
over her shoulders, she went out past Henri, on her way to Monte.
Monte had been all wrong in his guesses. She had actually been running
toward him instead of away from him when, just outside the hotel, she
almost collided with Peter Noyes and his sister.
Peter Noyes did not see her at first. His eyes were covered with a
green shade, even out here in the night. But his sister Beatrice gave
an exclamation that brought him to attention and made him fumble at the
shade as if to tear it off. Yet she had spoken but one word:--
"Marjory!"
She whose name had been called shrank back as if hoping the dark would
hide her.
"Marjory!" cried Peter Noyes.
Beatrice rushed forward, seizing both the girl's hands.
"It is you," she exclaimed, as if Marjory sought to deny the fact.
"Peter--Peter, it's Marjory Stockton!"
Peter stepped forward, his hand outstretched hesitatingly, as one who
cannot see. Marjory took the hand, staring with questioning eyes at
Beatrice.
"He worked too hard," explained the latter. "This is the price he
paid."
"Oh, I'm sorry, Peter!" she cried.
He tried to smile.
"It's at moments like this I mind it," he answered. "I--I thought you
were in Paris, Marjory."
"I came here to-day."
She spoke nervously.
"Then," he asked, "you--you are to be here a little while?"
Marjory passed her hand over her forehead.
"I don't know," she faltered.
Peter looked so thin! It was evident he had been long ill. She did
not like to see him so. The shade over his eyes horrified her.
Beatrice came nearer.
"If you could encourage him a little," she whispered. "He has wanted
so much to see you."
It was as if she in some way were being held responsible.
"You're not stopping here?" gasped Marjory.
"At the Hotel des Roses," nodded Beatrice. "And you?"
Peter with his haggard, earnest face, and Beatrice with her clear
honest eyes, filled her with sudden shame. It would be impossible to
make them understand. They were so American--so direct and
uncompromising about such affairs as these.
Beatrice had the features of a Puritan maid, and dressed the part, from
her severe little toque, her prim white dress reaching to her ankles,
to her sturdy boots. Her blue eyes were already growing big at
Marjory's hesitancy at answering so simple a question. She had been
here once with Aunt Kitty--they had stopped at the Hotel d'Angleterre.
Marjory mumbled that name now.
"Then I may come over to-night to see you for a moment, may I not?"
said Beatrice. "It is time Peter went in now."
"I--I may see you in the morning?" asked Peter.
"In the morning," she nodded. "Good-night."
She gave him her hand, and he held it as a child holds a hand in the
dark.
"I'll be over in half an hour," Beatrice called back.
It was only a few blocks to the Hotel d'Angleterre, but Marjory ran the
distance. Happily the clerk remembered her, or she might have found
some difficulty in having her excited excuse accepted that she was not
quite suited at the Roses. Then back again to Henri and Marie she
hurried, with orders to have the luggage transferred at once.
CHAPTER XV
IN THE DARK
In her new room at the Hotel d'Angleterre, Marjory dismissed Marie and
buried her hot face in her hands. She felt like a cornered thing--a
shamed and cornered thing. She should not have given the name of the
hotel. She should have sought Monte and ordered him to take her away.
Only--she could not face Monte himself. She did not know how she was
going to see him to-morrow--how she was ever going to see him again.
"Monsieur and Madame Covington," he had signed the register. Beatrice
must have seen it, but Peter had not. He must never see it, because he
would force her to confess the truth--the truth she had been struggling
to deny to herself.
She had trifled with a holy thing--that was the shameful truth. She
had posed here as a wife when she was no wife. The ceremony at the
English chapel helped her none. It only made her more dishonest. The
memory of Peter Noyes had warned her at the time, but she had not
listened. She had lacked then some vision which she had since
gained--gained through Monte. It was that which made her understand
Peter now, and the wonder of his love and the glory and sacredness of
all love. It was that which made her understand herself now.
She got to her feet, staring into the dark toward the seashore.
"Monte, forgive me--forgive me!" she choked.
She had trifled with the biggest thing in his life and in her life.
She shouldered the full blame. Monte knew nothing either of himself or
of her. He was just Monte, honest and four-square, living up to his
bargain. But she had seen the light in his eyes--the eyes that should
have led him to the Holy Grail. He would have had to go such a little
way--only as far as her outstretched arms.
She shrank back from the window, her head bowed. It had been her
privilege as a woman to be wiser than he. She should have known!
Now--the thought wrenched like a physical pain--there was nothing left
to her but renunciation. She must help him to be free. She must force
him free. She owed that to him and to herself. It was only so that
she might ever feel clean again.
Moaning his name, she flung herself upon the bed. So she lay until
summoned back to life by Marie, who brought her the card of Miss
Beatrice Noyes.
Marjory took the time to bathe her dry cheeks in hot water and to do
over her hair before admitting the girl; but, even with those
precautions, Beatrice paused at the entrance as if startled by her
appearance.
"Perhaps you do not feel like seeing any one to-night," she suggested.
"I do want to see you," answered Marjory. "I want to hear about Peter.
But my head--would you mind if we sat in the dark?"
"I think that would be better--if we are to talk about Peter."
The phrase puzzled Marjory, but she turned out the lights and placed
two chairs near the open windows.
"Now tell me from the beginning," she requested.
"The beginning came soon after you went away," replied Beatrice in a
low voice.
Marjory leaned back wearily. If there were to be more complications
for which she must hold herself accountable, she felt that she could
not listen. Surely she had lived through enough for one day.
"Peter cared a great deal for you," Beatrice faltered on.
"Why?"
It was a cry in the night.
Impulsively the younger girl leaned forward and fumbled for her hands.
"You did n't realize it?" she asked hopefully.
"I realized nothing then. I realized nothing yesterday," cried
Marjory. "It is only to-day that I began to realize anything."
"To-day?"
"Only to-night."
"It was the sight of Peter looking so unlike himself that opened your
heart," nodded Beatrice.
"Not my heart--just my eyes," returned Marjory.
"Your heart too," insisted Beatrice; "for it's only through your heart
that you can open Peter's eyes."
"I--I don't understand."
"Because he loves you," breathed Beatrice.
[Illustration: "Because he loves you," breathed Beatrice.]
"No. No--not that."
"You don't know how much," went on the girl excitedly. "None of us
knew how much--until after you went. Oh, he'd never forgive me if he
knew I was talking like this! But I can't help it. It was because he
would not talk--because he kept it a secret all to himself that this
came upon him. They told me at the hospital that it was overwork and
worry, and that he had only one chance in a hundred. But I sat by his
side, Marjory, night and day, and coaxed him back. Little by little he
grew stronger--all except his poor eyes. It was then he told me the
truth: how he had tried to forget you in his work."
"He--he blamed me?"
Beatrice was still clinging to her hands.
"No," she answered quickly. "He did not blame you. We never blame
those we love, do we?"
"But we hurt those we love!"
"Only when we don't understand. You did not know he loved you like
that, did you?"
Marjory withdrew her hands.
"He had no right!" she cried.
Beatrice was silent a moment. There was a great deal here that she
herself did not understand. But, though she herself had never loved,
there was a great deal she did understand. She spoke as if thinking
aloud.
"I have not found love--yet," she said. "But I never thought it was a
question of right when people loved. I thought it--it just happened."
Marjory drew a quick breath.
"Yes; it is like that," she admitted.
Only, she was not thinking of Peter. She was thinking of herself. A
week ago she would have smiled at that phrase. Even yesterday she
would have smiled a little. Love was something a woman or man
undertook or not at will. It was a condition to choose as one chose
one's style of living. It was accepted or rejected, as suited one's
pleasure. If a woman preferred her freedom, then that was her right.
Then, less than an hour ago, she had flung out her hands toward the
shadowy figure of a man walking alone by the sea, her heart aching with
a great need for the love that might have been hers had she not smiled.
That need, springing of her own love, had just happened. The
fulfillment of it was a matter to be decided by her own conscience; but
the love itself had involved no question of right. She felt a wave of
sympathy for Peter. She was able to feel for him now as never before.
Poor Peter, lying there alone in the hospital! How the ache,
unsatisfied, ate into one.
"Peter would n't tell me at first," Beatrice was running on. "His lips
were as tight closed as his poor bandaged eyes."
"The blindness," broke in Marjory. "That is not permanent?"
"I will tell you what the doctor told me," Beatrice replied slowly.
"He said that, while his eyes were badly overstrained, the seat of the
trouble was mental. 'He is worrying,' he told me. 'Remove the cause
of that and he has a chance.'"
"So you have come to me for that?"
"It seems like fate," said Peter's sister, with something of awe in her
voice. "When, little by little, Peter told me of his love, I thought
of only one thing: of finding you. I wanted to cable you, because I--I
thought you would come if you knew. But Peter would not allow that.
He made me promise not to do that. Then, as he grew stronger, and the
doctor told us that perhaps an ocean voyage would help him, I wanted to
bring him to you. He would not allow that either. He thought you were
in Paris, and insisted that we take the Mediterranean route. Then--we
happen upon you outside the hotel we chose by chance! Does n't it seem
as if back of such a thing as that there must be something we don't
understand; something higher than just what we may think right or
wrong?"
"No, no; that's impossible," exclaimed Marjory.
"Why?"
"Because then we'd have to believe everything that happened was right.
And it is n't."
"Was our coming here not right?"
Marjory did not answer.
"If you could have seen the hope in Peter's face when I left him!"
"He does n't know!" choked Marjory.
"He knows you are here, and that is all he needs to know," answered
Beatrice.
"If it were only as simple as that."
The younger girl rose and, moving to the other's side, placed an arm
over the drooping shoulders.
"Marjory dear," she said. "I feel to-night more like Peter than
myself. I have listened so many hours in the dark as he talked about
you. He--he has given me a new idea of love. I'd always thought of
love in a--a sort of fairy-book way. I did n't think of it as having
much to do with everyday life. I supposed that some time a knight
would come along on horseback--if ever he came--and take me off on a
long holiday."
Marjory gave a start. The girl was smoothing her hair.
"It would always be May-time," she went on, "and we'd have nothing to
do but gather posies in the sunshine. We'd laugh and sing, and there'd
be no care and no worries. Did you ever think of love that way?"
"Yes."
The girl spoke more slowly now, as if anxious to be quite accurate:--
"But Peter seemed to think of other things. When we talked of you it
was as if he wanted you to be a part of himself and help with the big
things he was planning to do. He had so many wonderful plans in which
you were to help. Instead of running away from cares and worries, it
was as though meeting these was what was going to make it May-time.
Instead of riding off to some fairy kingdom, he seemed to feel that it
was this that would make a fairy kingdom even of New York.
Because"--she lowered her voice--"it was of a home and of children he
talked, and of what a fine mother you would make. He talked of
that--and somehow, Marjory, it made me proud just to be a woman! Oh,
perhaps I should n't repeat such things!"
Marjory sprang to her feet.
"You should n't repeat them!" she exclaimed. "You mustn't repeat
anything more! And I must n't listen!"
"It is only because you're the woman I came to know so well, sitting by
his bed in the dark, that I dared," she said gently.
"You'll go now?" pleaded Marjory. "I must n't listen to any more."
Silently, as if frightened by what she had already said, Beatrice moved
toward the door.
Marjory hurried after her.
"You're good," she cried, "and Peter's good! And I--"
The girl finished for her:--
"No matter what happens, you'll always be to me Peter's Marjory," she
said. "You'll always keep me proud."
CHAPTER XVI
A WALK ON THE QUAY
Monte, stepping out of his room early after a restless night, saw a
black-haired young man wearing a shade over his eyes fumbling about for
the elevator button. He had the thin, nervous mouth and the square jaw
of an American.
Monte stepped up to him.
"May I help you?" he asked.
"Thank you," answered Noyes; "I thought I could make it alone, but
there is n't much light here."
Monte took his arm and assisted him to the elevator. The man appeared
half blind. His heart went out to him at once. As they reached the
first floor the stranger again hesitated. He smiled nervously.
"I wanted to get out in the air," he explained. "I thought I could
find a valet to accompany me."
Monte hesitated. He did not want to intrude, but there was something
about this helpless American that appealed to him. Impulsively he
said: "Would you come with me? Covington is my name. I 'm just off
for a walk along the quay."
"Noyes is my name," answered Peter. "I'd like to come, but I don't
want to trouble you to that extent."
Monte took his arm.
"Come on," he said. "It's a bully morning."
"The air smells good," nodded Noyes. "I should have waited for my
sister, but I was a bit restless. Do you mind asking the clerk to let
her know where I am when she comes down?"
Monte called Henri.
"Inform Miss Noyes we'll be on the quay," he told him.
They walked in silence until they reached the boulevard bordering the
ocean.
"We have the place to ourselves," said Monte. "If I walk too fast for
you, let me know."
"I 'm not very sure of my feet yet," apologized Noyes. "I suppose in
time I'll get used to this."
"Good Lord, you don't expect it to last?"
"No. They tell me I have a fighting chance."
"How did it happen?"
"Used them a bit too much, I guess," answered Noyes.
"That's tough."
"A man has so darned much to do and such a little while to do it in,"
exclaimed Noyes.
"You must live in New York."
"Yes. And you?"
"I generally drift back for the holidays. I've been traveling a good
deal for the last ten years."
"I see. Some sort of research work?"
The way Noyes used that word "work" made Monte uncomfortable. It was
as if he took it for granted that a man who was a man must have a
definite occupation.
"I don't know that you would call it exactly that," answered Monte. "I
've just been knocking around. I have n't had anything in particular
to do. What are you in?"
"Law. I wonder if you're Harvard?"
"Sure thing. And you?"
Noyes named his class--a class six years later than Monte's.
"Well, we have something in common there, anyhow," said Covington
cordially. "My father was Harvard Law School. He practiced in
Philadelphia."
"I've always lived in New York. I was born there, and I love it. I
like the way it makes you hustle--the challenge to get in and live--"
He stopped abruptly, putting one hand to his eyes.
"They hurt?" asked Monte anxiously.
"You need your eyes in New York," he answered simply.
"You went in too hard," suggested Monte.
"Is there any other way?" cried Noyes.
"I used to play football a little," said Monte. "I suppose it's
something like that--when a man gets the spirit of the thing. When you
hit the line you want to feel that you 're putting into it every ounce
in you."
Noyes nodded.
"Into your work--into your life."
"Into your life?" queried Monte.
"Into everything."
Monte turned to look at the man. His thin lips had come together in a
straight line. His hollow cheeks were flushed. Every sense was as
alert as a fencer's. If he had lived long like that, no wonder his
eyes had gone bad. Yet last night Monte himself had lived like that,
pacing his room hour after hour. Only it was not work that had given a
cutting edge to each minute--not life, whatever Noyes meant by that.
His thoughts had all been of a woman. Was that life? Was it what
Noyes had meant when he said "everything"?
"This bucking the line all the time raises the devil with you," he said.
"How?" demanded Noyes.
The answer Monte could have returned was obvious. The fact that amazed
him was that Noyes could have asked the question with the sun and the
blue sky shut away from him. It only proved again what Monte had
always maintained--that excesses of any kind, whether of rum or
ambition or--or love--drove men stark mad. Blind as a bat from
overwork, Noyes still asked the question.
"Look here," said Monte, with a frown. "Before the big events the
coach used to take us one side and make us believe that the one thing
in life we wanted was that game. He used to make us as hungry for it
as a starved dog for a bone. He used to make us ache for it. So we
used to wade in and tear ourselves all to pieces to get it."
"Well?"
"If we won it was n't so much; if we lost--it left us aching worse than
before."
"Yes."
"There was the crowd that sat and watched us. They did n't care the
way we cared. We went back to the locker building in strings; they
went off to a comfortable dinner."
"And the moral?" demanded Noyes.
"Is not to care too darned much, is n't it?" growled Monte.
"If you want a comfortable dinner," nodded Noyes.
"Or a comfortable night's sleep. Or if you want to wake up in the
morning with the world looking right."
Again Monte saw the impulsive movement of the man's hand to his eyes.
He said quickly: "I did n't mean to refer to that."
"I forget it for a while. Then--suddenly--I remember it."
"You wanted something too hard," said Monte gently.
"I wanted something with all there was in me. I still want it."
"You're not sorry, then?"
"If I were sorry for that, I'd be sorry I was alive."
"But the cost!"
"Of what value is a thing that doesn't cost?" returned Noyes. "All the
big things cost big. Half the joy in them is pitting yourself against
that and paying the price. The ache you speak of--that's credited to
the joy in the end. Those men in the grand-stand don't know that. If
you fight hard, you can't lose, no matter what the score is against
you."
"You mean it's possible to get some of your fun out of the game itself?"
"What else is there to life--if you pick the things worth fighting for?"
"Then, if you lose--"
"You've lived," concluded Noyes.
"It's men like you who ought really to win," exclaimed Monte. "I hope
you get what you went after."
"I mean to," answered Noyes, with grim determination.
They had turned and were coming back in the direction of the hotel when
Monte saw a girlish figure hurrying toward them.
"I think your sister is coming," said Monte.
"Then you can be relieved of me," answered Noyes.
"But I 've enjoyed this walk immensely. I hope we can take another.
Are you here for long?"
"Indefinitely. And you?"
"Also indefinitely."
Miss Noyes was by their side now.
"Sister--this is Mr. Covington," Peter introduced her.
Miss Noyes smiled.
"I've good news for you, Peter," she said. "I've just heard from
Marjory, and she'll see you at ten."
Monte was startled by the name, but was even more startled by the look
of joy that illuminated the features of the man by his side. For a
second it was as if his blind eyes had suddenly come to life.
Monte caught his breath.
CHAPTER XVII
JUST MONTE
Monte was at the Hotel d'Angleterre at nine. In response to his card
he received a brief note.
_Dear Monte_ [he read]: Please don't ask to see me this morning. I'm
so mixed up I'm afraid I won't be at all good company.
Yours, MARJORY.
Monte sent back this note in reply:--
_Dear Marjory_: If you're mixed up, I'm just the one you ought to see.
You've been thinking again.
MONTE.
She came into the office looking like a hunted thing; but he stepped
forward to meet her with a boyish good humor that reassured her in an
instant. The firm grip of his hand alone was enough to steady her.
Her tired eyes smiled gratitude.
"I never expected to be married and deserted--all in one week," he said
lightly. "What's the trouble?"
He felt like a comedian trying to be funny with the heart gone out of
him. But he knew she expected no less. He must remain just Monte or
he would only frighten her the more. No matter if his heart pounded
until he could not catch his breath, he must play the care-free chump
of a _compagnon de voyage_. That was all she had married--all she
wanted. She glanced at his arm in its black sling.
"Who tied that this morning?" she asked.
"The valet."
"He did n't do it at all nicely. There's a little sun parlor on the
next floor. Come with me and I 'll do it over."
He followed her upstairs and into a room filled with flowers and wicker
chairs. She stood before him and readjusted the handkerchief, so near
that he thought he felt her breath. It was a test for a man, and he
came through it nobly.
"There--that's better," she said. "Now take the big chair in the sun."
She drew it forward a little, though he protested at so much attention.
She dropped into another seat a little away from him.
"Well?" he inquired. "Aren't you going to tell me about it?"
He was making it as easy as possible--easier than she had anticipated.
"Won't you please smoke?"
He lighted a cigarette.
"Now we're off," he encouraged her.
He was leaning back with one leg crossed over the other--a big,
wholesome boy. His blue eyes this morning were the color of the sky,
and just as clean and just as untroubled. As she studied him the
thought uppermost in her mind was that she must not hurt him. She must
be very careful about that. She must give him nothing to worry over.
"Monte," she began, "I guess women have a lot of queer notions men
don't know anything about. Can't we let it go at that?"
"If you wish," he nodded. "Only--are you going to stay here?"
"For a little while, anyway," she answered.
"You mean--a day or two?"
"Or a week or two."
"You'd rather not tell me why?"
"If you please--not," she answered quickly.
He thought a moment, and then asked:--
"It was n't anything I did?"
"No, no," she assured him. "You've been so good, Monte."
He was so good with her now--so gentle and considerate. It made her
heart ache. With her chin in hand, elbow upon the arm of her chair,
she was apparently looking at him more or less indifferently, when what
she would have liked to do was to smooth away the perplexed frown
between his brows.
"Then," he asked, "your coming here has n't anything to do with me?"
She could not answer that directly. With her cheeks burning and her
lips dry, she tried to think just what to say. Above all things, she
must not worry him!
"It has to do with you and myself and--Peter Noyes," she answered.
"Peter Noyes!"
He sat upright.
"He is at the Hotel des Roses--with his sister," Marjory ran on
hurriedly. "They are both old friends, and I met them quite by
accident last night. Suddenly, Monte,--they made my position there
impossible. They gave me a new point of view on myself--on you. I
guess it was an American point of view. What had seemed right before
did not seem right then."
"Is that why you resumed your maiden name?"
"That is why. But sooner or later Peter will know the truth, won't he?"
"How will he know?"
"The name you signed on the register."
"That's so, too," Monte admitted. "But that says only 'Madame
Covington.' Madame Covington might be any one."
He smiled, but his lips were tense.
"She may have been called home unexpectedly."
The girl hid her face in her hands. He rose and stepped to her side.
"There, there," he said gently. "Don't worry about that. There is no
reason why they should ever associate you with her. If they make any
inquiries of me about madame, I'll just say she has gone away for a
little while--perhaps for a week or two. Is that right?"
"I--I don't know."
"Nothing unusual about that. Wives are always going away. Even Chic's
wife goes away every now and then. As for you, little woman, I think
you did the only thing possible. I met that Peter Noyes this morning."
Startled, she raised her face from her hands.
"You met--Peter Noyes?" she asked slowly.
"Quite by chance. He was on his way to walk, and I took him with me.
He's a wonderful fellow, Marjory."
"You talked with him?"
He nodded.
"He takes life mighty seriously."
"Too seriously, Monte," she returned.
"It's what made him blind; and yet--there 's something worth while
about a man who gets into the game that way. Hanged if he did n't
leave me feeling uncomfortable."
She looked worried.
"How, Monte?"
"Oh, as though I ought to be doing something instead of just kicking
around the Continent. Do you know I had a notion of studying law at
one time?"
"But there was no need of it, was there?"
"Not in one way. Only, I suppose I could have made myself useful
somewhere, even if I did n't have to earn a living. Maybe there's a
use for every one--somewhere."
He had left her side, and was staring out the window toward the ocean.
She watched him anxiously. She had never seen him like this, and yet,
in a way, this was the same Monte in whose eyes she had caught a
glimpse of the wonderful bright light. It was the man who had leaned
toward her as they walked on the shore the night before they reached
Nice--a gallant prince of the fairy-books, ready to step into real life
and be a gallant prince there.
Monte had never had a chance. Had he been left as Peter Noyes had been
left, dependent upon himself, he would have done all that Peter had
done, without losing his smile. Marjory must not allow him to lose
that now. His mouth was drooping with such exaggerated melancholy that
she felt something must be done at once. She began to laugh. He
turned quickly.
"You look as if you had lost your last friend," she chided him. "If
talking with Peter Noyes does that to you, I don't think you had better
talk with him any more."
"He's worth more to-day, blind, than I with my two eyes."
"The trouble with Peter is that he can't smile," she answered. "After
all, it would be a sad world if no one were left to smile."
The words brought back to him the phrase she had used at the Normandie:
"I am depending on you to keep me normal."
Here was something right at hand for him to do, and a man's job at
that. He had wanted a chance to play the game, and here it was.
Perhaps the game was not so big as some,--it concerned only her and
him,--but there was a certain added challenge in playing the little
game hard. Besides, the importance of the game was a good deal in the
point of view. If, for him, it was big, that was enough.
As he stood before her now, the demand upon him for all his nerve was
enough to satisfy any man. To assume before her the pose of the
carefree chump that she needed to balance her own nervous fears--to do
this with every muscle in him straining toward her, with the beauty of
her making him dizzy, with hot words leaping for expression to his dry
lips, those facts, after all, made the game seem not so small.
"Where are you going to lunch to-day?" he asked.
"I don't know, Monte," she answered indifferently. "I told Peter he
could come over at ten."
"I see. Want to lunch with him?"
"I don't want to lunch with any one."
"He'll probably expect you. I was going to look at some villas to-day;
but I suppose that's all off."
Her cheeks turned scarlet.
"Yes."
"Then I guess I'll walk to Monte Carlo and lunch there. How about
dinner?"
"If they see us together--"
"Ask them to come along too. You can tell them I'm an old friend. I
am that, am I not?"
"One of the oldest and best," she answered earnestly.
"Then I'll call you up when I come back. Good luck."
With a nod and a smile, he left her.
From the window she watched him out of sight. He did not turn. There
was no reason in the world why she should have expected him to turn.
He had a pleasant day before him. He would amuse himself at the
Casino, enjoy a good luncheon, smoke a cigarette in the sunshine, and
call her up at his leisure when he returned. Except for the light
obligation of ascertaining her wishes concerning dinner, it was the
routine he had followed for ten years. It had kept him satisfied, kept
him content. Doubtless, if he were left undisturbed, it would keep him
satisfied and content for another decade. He would always be able to
walk away from her without turning back.
CHAPTER XVIII
PETER
Beatrice brought Peter at ten, and, in spite of the mute appeal of
Marjory's eyes, stole off on tiptoe and left her alone with him.
"Has Trix gone?" demanded Peter.
"Yes."
"She shouldn't have done that," he complained.
Marjory made him comfortable in the chair Monte had lately occupied,
finding a cushion for his head.
"Please don't do those things," he objected. "You make me feel as if I
were wearing a sign begging for pity."
"How can any one help pitying you, when they see you like this, Peter?"
she asked gently.
"What right have they to do it?" he demanded.
"Right?"
She frowned at that word. So many things in her life seemed to have
been decided without respect for right.
"I'm the only one to say whether I shall be pitied or not," he
declared. "I've lost the use of my eyes temporarily by my own fault.
I don't like it; but I refuse to be pitied."
Marjory was surprised to find him so aggressive. It was not what she
expected after listening to Beatrice. It changed her whole attitude
toward him instantly from one of guarded condolence to honest
admiration. There was no whine here. He was blaming no one--neither
himself nor her. It was with a wave of deep and sincere sympathy,
springing spontaneously from within herself, that she spoke.
"Peter," she said, "I won't pity you any more. But if I 'm sorry for
you--awfully sorry--you won't mind that?"
"I'd rather you would n't think of my eyes at all," he answered
unsteadily. "I can almost forget them myself--with you."
"Then," she said, "we'll forget them. Are you going to stay here long,
Peter?"
"Are you?"
"My plans are uncertain. I don't think I shall ever make any more
plans."
"You must n't let yourself feel that way," Peter returned. "The thing
to do, if one scheme fails, is to start another--right off."
"But nothing ever comes out as you expect."
"That gives you a chance to try again."
"You can't keep that up forever?"
"Forever and ever," he nodded. "It's what makes life worth living."
"Peter," she said below her breath, "you're wonderful."
He seemed to clear the muggy air around her like a summer shower. In
touch with his fine courage, her own returned. She felt herself
steadier and calmer than she had been for a week.
"What if you make mistakes, Peter?"
"It's the only way you learn," he answered. "There's a new note in
your voice, Marjory. Have--you been learning?"
His meaning was clear. He leaned forward as if trying to pierce the
darkness between them. His thin white hands were tight upon the chair
arms.
"At least, I've been making mistakes," she answered uneasily.
She felt, for a second, as if she could pour out her troubles to
him--as if he would listen patiently and give her of his wisdom and
strength. It would be easier--she was ashamed of the thought, but it
held true--because he could not see. Almost--she could tell him of
herself and of Monte.
"There's such a beautiful woman in you!" he explained passionately.
With her heart beating fast, she dropped back in her chair. There was
the old ring in his voice--the old masterful decision that used to
frighten her. There used to be moments when she was afraid that he
might command her to come with him as with authority, and that she
would go.
"I 've always known that you'd learn some day all the fine things that
are in you--all the fine things that lay ahead of you to do as a
woman," he ran on. "You've only been waiting; that's all."
He could not see her cheeks--she was thankful for that. But the wonder
was that he did not hear the pounding of her heart. He spoke like
this, not knowing of this last week.
"You remember all the things I said to you--before you left?"
"Yes."
"I can't say them to you now. I must wait until I get my eyes back.
Then I shall say them again, and perhaps--"
"Do you think I 'd let you wait for your eyes?" she cried.
"You mean that now--"
"No, no, Peter," she interrupted, in a panic. "I did n't mean I could
listen now. Only I did n't want you to think I was so selfish that if
it were possible to share the light with you I--I would n't share the
dark too."
"There would n't be any dark for me at all if you shared it," he
answered gently.
Then she saw his lips tighten.
"We must n't talk of that," he said. "We must n't think of it."
Yet, of all the many things they discussed this morning, nothing left
Marjory more to think about. It seemed that, so far, her freedom had
done nothing but harm. She had intended no harm. She had desired only
to lead her own life day by day, quite by herself. So she had fled
from Peter--with this result; then she had fled from Teddy, who had
lost his head completely; finally she had fled, not from Monte but with
him, because that seemed quite the safest thing to do. It had proved
the most dangerous of all! If she had driven Peter blind, Monte--if he
only knew it--had brought him sweet revenge, because he had made her,
not blind, but something that was worse, a thousand times worse!
There was some hope for Peter. It is so much easier to cure blindness
than vision. Always she must see the light that had leaped to Monte's
eyes, kindled from the fire in her own soul. Always she must see him
coming to her outstretched arms, knowing that she had lost the right to
lift her arms. Perhaps she must even see him going to other arms, that
flame born of her breathed into fuller life by other lips. If
not--then the ultimate curse of watching him remain just Monte, knowing
he might have been so much more. This because she had dared trifle
with that holy passion and so had made herself unworthy of it.
Peter was telling her of his work; of what he had accomplished already
and of what he hoped to accomplish. She heard him as from a distance,
and answered mechanically his questions, while she pursued her own
thoughts.
It seemed almost as if a woman was not allowed to remain negative; that
either she must accomplish positive good or positive harm. So far, she
had accomplished only harm; and now here was an opportunity that was
almost an obligation to offset that to some degree. She must free
Monte as soon as possible. That was necessary in any event. She owed
it to him. It was a sacred obligation that she must pay to save even
the frayed remnant of her pride. This had nothing to do with Peter.
She saw now it would have been necessary just the same, even if Peter
had not come to make it clearer. Until she gave up the name to which
she had no right, with which she had so shamelessly trifled, she must
feel only glad that Peter could not see into her eyes.
So Monte would go on his way again, and she would be left--she and
Peter. If, then, what Beatrice said was true,--if it was within her
power, at no matter what sacrifice, to give Peter back the sight she
had taken,--then so she might undo some of the wrong she had done. The
bigger the sacrifice, the fiercer the fire might rage to burn her
clean. Because she had thought to sacrifice nothing, she had been
forced to sacrifice everything; if now she sacrificed everything,
perhaps she could get back a little peace in return. She would give
her life to Peter--give him everything that was left in her to give.
Humbly she would serve him and nurse the light back into his eyes. Was
it possible to do this?
She saw Beatrice at the door, and rose to meet her.
"You're to lunch with me," she said. "Then, for dinner, Mr. Covington
has asked us all to join him."
"Covington?" exclaimed Peter. "Is n't he the man who was so decent to
me this morning?"
"He said he met you," answered Marjory.
"I liked him," declared Peter. "I'll be mighty glad to see more of
him."
"And I too," nodded Beatrice. "He looked so very romantic with his
injured arm."
"Monte romantic?" smiled Marjory. "That's the one thing in the world
he is n't."
"Just who is he, anyway?" inquired Beatrice.
"He's just Monte," answered Marjory.
"And Madame Monte--where is she? I noticed by the register there is
such a person."
"I--I think he said she had been called away--unexpectedly," Marjory
gasped.
She turned aside with an uncomfortable feeling that Beatrice had
noticed her confusion.
CHAPTER XIX
AN EXPLANATION
The following week Monte devoted himself wholly to the entertainment of
Marjory and her friends. He placed his car at their disposal, and
planned for them daily trips with the thoroughness of a courier, though
he generally found some excuse for not going himself. His object was
simple: to keep Marjory's days so filled that she would have no time
left in which to worry. He wanted to help her, as far as possible, to
forget the preceding week, which had so disturbed her. To this end
nothing could be better for her than Peter and Beatrice Noyes, who were
so simply and honestly plain, everyday Americans. They were just the
wholesome, good-natured companions she needed to offset the morbid
frame of mind into which he had driven her. Especially Peter. He was
good for her and she was good for him.
The more he talked with Peter Noyes the better he liked him. At the
end of the day--after seeing them started in the morning, Monte used to
go out and walk his legs off till dinner-time--he enjoyed dropping into
a chair by the side of Peter. It was wonderful how already Peter had
picked up. He had gained not only in weight and color, but a marked
mental change was noticeable. He always came back from his ride in
high spirits. So completely did he ignore his blindness that Monte,
talking with him in the dark, found himself forgetting it--awakening to
the fact each time with a shock when it was necessary to offer an
assisting arm.
It was the man's enthusiasm Monte admired. He seemed to be always
alert--always keen. Yet, as near as he could find out, his life had
been anything but adventuresome or varied. After leaving the law
school he had settled down in a New York office and just plugged along.
He confessed that this was the first vacation he had taken since he
began practice.
"You can hardly call this a vacation!" exclaimed Monte.
"Man dear," answered Peter earnestly, "you don't know what these days
mean to me."
"You sure are entitled to all the fun you can get out of them,"
returned Monte. "But I hate to think how I'd feel under the same
circumstances."
"I don't believe there is much difference between men," answered Peter.
"I imagine that about certain things we all feel a good deal alike."
"I wonder," mused Monte. "I can't imagine myself, for instance, living
twelve months in the year in New York and being enthusiastic about it."
"What do you do when you're there?" inquired Peter.
"Not much of anything," admitted Monte.
"Then you're no more in New York when you're there than in Jericho,"
answered Peter. "You 've got to get into the game really to live in
New York. You 've got to work and be one of the million others before
you can get the feel of the city. Best of all, a man ought to marry
there. You're married, are n't you, Covington?"
"Eh?"
"Did n't Beatrice tell me you registered here with your wife?"
[Illustration: "Did n't Beatrice tell me you registered here with your
wife?"]
Monte moistened his lips.
"Yes--she was here for a day. She--she was called away."
"That's too bad. I hope we'll have an opportunity to meet her before
we leave."
"Thanks."
"She ought to help you understand New York."
"Perhaps she would. We've never been there together."
"Been married long?"
"No."
"So you have n't any children."
"Hardly."
"Then," said Peter, "you have your whole life ahead of you. You have
n't begun to live anywhere yet."
"And you?"
"It's the same with me," confessed Peter, with a quick breath.
"Only--well, I haven't been able to make even the beginning you 've
made."
Monte leaned forward with quickened interest.
"That's the thing you wanted so hard?" he asked.
"Yes."
"To marry and have children?"
Monte was silent a moment, and then he added:--
"I know a man who did that."
"A man who does n't is n't a man, is he?"
"I--I don't know," confessed Monte. "I 've visited this friend once or
twice. Did you ever see a kiddy with the croup?"
"No," admitted Peter.
"You're darned lucky. It's just as though--as though some one had the
little devil by the throat, trying to strangle him."
"There are things you can do."
"Things you can try to do. But mostly you stand around with your hands
tied, waiting to see what's going to happen."
"Well?" queried Peter, evidently puzzled.
"That's only one of a thousand things that can happen to 'em. There
are worse things. They are happening every day."
"Well?"
"When I think of Chic and his children I think of him pacing the hall
with his forehead all sweaty with the ache inside of him. Nothing
pleasant about that, is there?"
Peter did not answer for a moment, and then what he said seemed rather
pointless.
"What of it?" he asked.
"Only this," answered Monte uneasily. "When you speak of a wife and
children you have to remember those facts. You have to consider that
you 're going to be torn all to shoe-strings every so often. Maybe you
open the gates of heaven, but you throw open the gates of hell too.
There's no more jogging along in between on the good old earth."
"Good Lord!" exclaimed Peter. "You consider such things?"
"I've always tried to stay normal," answered Monte uneasily.
"Yet you said you're married?"
"Even so, is n't it possible for a man to keep his head?" demanded
Monte.
"I don't understand," replied Peter.
"Look here--I don't want to intrude in your affairs, but I don't
suppose you are talking merely abstractedly. You have some one
definite in mind?"
"Yes."
"Then you ought to understand; you've kept steady."
"I wouldn't be like this if I had," answered Peter.
"You mean your eyes."
"I tried to forget her because she wasn't ready to listen. I turned to
my work, and put in twenty hours a day. It was a fool thing to do.
And yet--"
Monte held his breath.
"From the depths I saw the heights, I saw the wonderful beauty of the
peaks."
"And still see them?"
"Clearer than ever now."
"Then you aren't sorry she came into your life?"
"Sorry, man?" exclaimed Peter. "Even at this price--even if there were
no hope ahead, I'd still have my visions."
"But there is hope?"
"I have one chance in a thousand. It's more than anything I 've had up
to now."
"One in a thousand is a fighting chance," Monte returned.
"You speak as if that were more than you had."
"It was."
"Yet you won out."
"How?" demanded Monte.
"She married you."
"Yes," answered Monte, "that's true. I say, old man--it's getting a
bit cool here. Perhaps we'd better go in."
Monte had planned for them a drive to Cannes the day Beatrice sent word
to Marjory that she would be unable to go.
"But you two will go, won't you?" she concluded her note. "Peter will
be terribly disappointed if you don't."
So they went, leaving at ten o'clock. At ten-fifteen Beatrice came
downstairs, and ran into Monte just as he was about to start his walk.
"You're feeling better?" he asked politely.
She shook her head.
"I--I'm afraid I told a fib."
"You mean you stayed because you did n't want to go."
"Yes. But I did n't say I had a headache."
"I know how you feel about that," he returned. "Leaving people to
guess wrong lets you out in one way, and in another it does n't."
She appeared surprised at his directness. She had expected him to pass
the incident over lightly.
"It was for Peter's sake, anyhow," she tried to justify her position.
"But don't let me delay you, please. I know you 're off for your
morning walk."
That was true. But he was interested in that statement she had just
made that it was for Peter's sake she had remained behind. It revealed
an amazingly dense ignorance of both her brother's position and
Marjory's. On no other theory could he make it seem consistent for her
to encourage a tete-a-tete between a married woman and a man as deeply
in love with some one else as Peter was.
"Won't you come along a little way?" he asked. "We can turn back at
any time."
She hesitated a moment--but only a moment.
"Thanks."
She fell into step at his side as he sought the quay.
"You've been very good to Peter," she said. "I've wanted a chance to
tell you so."
"You did n't remain behind for that, I hope," he smiled.
"No," she admitted; "but I do appreciate your kindness. Peter has had
such a terrible time of it."
"And yet," mused Monte aloud, "he does n't seem to feel that way
himself."
"He has confided in you?"
"A little. He told me he regretted nothing."
"He has such fine courage!" she exclaimed.
"Not that alone. He has had some beautiful dreams."
"That's because of his courage."
"It takes courage, then, to dream?" Monte asked.
"Don't you think it does--with your eyes gone?"
"With or without eyes," he admitted.
"You don't know what he's been through," she frowned. "Even he does
n't know. When I came to him, there was so little of him left. I 'll
never forget the first sight I had of him in the hospital. Thin and
white and blind, he lay there as though dead."
He looked at the frail young woman by his side. She must have had fine
courage too. There was something of Peter in her.
"And you nursed him back."
She blushed at the praise.
"Perhaps I helped a little; but, after all, it was the dreams he had
that counted most. All I did was to listen and try to make them real
to him. I tried to make him hope."
"That was fine."
"He loved so hard, with all there was in him, as he does everything,"
she explained.
"I suppose that was the trouble," he nodded.
She turned quickly. It was as if he said that was the mistake.
"After all, that's just love, is n't it? There can't be any halfway
about it, can there?"
"I wonder."
"You--you wonder, Mr. Covington?"
He was stupid at first. He did not get the connection. Then, as she
turned her dark eyes full upon him, the blood leaped to his cheeks. He
was married--that was what she was trying to tell him. He had a wife,
and so presumably knew what love was. For her to assume anything else,
for him to admit anything else, was impossible.
"Perhaps we'd better turn back," she said uneasily.
He felt like a cad. He turned instantly.
"I 'm afraid I did n't make myself very clear," he faltered. "We are
n't all of us like Peter."
"There is no one in the world quite as good as Peter," the girl
declared.
"Then you should n't blame me too much," he suggested.
"It is not for me to criticize you at all," she returned somewhat
stiffly.
"But you did."
"How?"
"When you suggested turning back. It was as if you had determined I
was not quite a proper person to walk with."
"Mr. Covington!" she protested.
"We may as well be frank. It seems to be a misfortune of mine lately
to get things mixed up. Peter is helping me to see straight. That's
why I like to talk with him."
"He sees so straight himself."
"That's it."
"If only now he recovers his eyes."
"He says there's hope."
"It all depends upon her," she said.
"Upon this woman?"
"Upon this one woman."
"If she realized it--"
"She does," broke in Beatrice. "I made her realize it. I went to her
and told her."
"You did that?"
She raised her head in swift challenge.
"Even though Peter commanded me not to--even though I knew he would
never forgive me if he learned."
"You women are so wonderful," breathed Monte.
"With Peter's future--with his life at stake--what else could I do?"
"And she, knowing that, refused to come to him?"
"Fate brought us to her."
"Then," exclaimed Monte, "what are you doing here?"
She stopped and faced him. It was evident that he was sincere.
"You men--all men are so stupid at times!" she cried, with a little
laugh.
He shook his head slowly.
"I 'll have to admit it."
"Why, he's with her now," she laughed. "That's why I stayed at home
to-day."
Monte held his breath for a second, and then he said:--
"You mean, the woman Peter loves is--is Marjory Stockton?"
"No other. I thought he must have told you. If not, I thought you
must have guessed it from her."
"Why, no," he admitted; "I did n't."
"Then you've had your eyes closed."
"That's it," he nodded; "I've had my eyes closed. Why, that explains a
lot of things."
Impulsively the girl placed her hand on Monte's arm.
"As an old friend of hers, you'll use your influence to help Peter?"
"I 'll do what I can."
"Then I'm so glad I told you."
"Yes," agreed Monte. "I suppose it is just as well for me to know."
CHAPTER XX
PAYING LIKE A MAN
Everything considered, Monte should have been glad at the revelation
Beatrice made to him. If Peter were in love with Marjory and she with
Peter--why, it solved his own problem, by the simple process of
elimination, neatly and with despatch. All that remained for him to do
was to remove himself from the awkward triangle as soon as possible.
He must leave Marjory free, and Peter would look after the rest. No
doubt a divorce on the grounds of desertion could be easily arranged;
and thus, by that one stroke, they two would be made happy, and
he--well, what the devil was to become of him?
The answer was obvious. It did not matter a picayune to any one what
became of him. What had he ever done to make his life worth while to
any one? He had never done any particular harm, that was true; but
neither had he done any particular good. It is the positive things
that count, when a man stands before the judgment-seat; and that is
where Monte stood on the night Marjory came back from Cannes by the
side of Peter, with her eyes sparkling and her cheeks flushed as if she
had come straight from Eden.
They all dined together, and Monte grubbed hungrily for every look she
vouchsafed him, for every word she tossed him. She had been more than
ordinarily vivacious, spurred on partly by Beatrice and partly by
Peter. Monte had felt himself merely an onlooker. That, in fact, was
all he was. That was all he had been his whole life.
He dodged Peter this evening to escape their usual after-dinner talk,
and went to his room. He was there now, with his face white and tense.
He had been densely stupid from the first, as Beatrice had informed
him. Any man of the world ought to have suspected something when, at
the first sight of Peter, she ran away. She had never run from him.
Women run only when there is danger of capture, and she had nothing to
fear from him in that way. She was safe with him. She dared even come
with him to escape those from whom there might be some possible danger.
Until now he had been rather proud of this--as if it were some honor.
She had trusted him as she would not trust other men. It had made him
throw back his shoulders--dense fool that he was!
She had trusted him because she did not fear him; she did not fear him
because there was nothing in him to fear. It was not that he was more
decent than other men: it was merely because he was less of a man.
Why, she had run even from Peter--good, honest, conscientious Peter,
with the heart and the soul and the nerve of a man. Peter had sent her
scurrying before him because of the great love he dared to have for
her. Peter challenged her to take up life with him--to buck New York
with him. This was after he had waded in himself with naked fists,
man-fashion. That was what gave Peter his right. That right was what
she feared.
Monte had a grandfather who in forty-nine crossed the plains. A
picture of him hung in the Covington house in Philadelphia. The
painting revealed steel-gray eyes and, even below the beard of
respectability, a mouth that in many ways was like Peter's. Montague
Sears Covington--that was his name; the name that had been handed down
to Monte. The man had shouldered a rifle, fought his way across
deserts and over mountain paths, had risked his life a dozen times a
day to reach the unknown El Dorado of the West. He had done this
partly for a woman--a slip of a girl in New York whom he left behind to
wait for him, though she begged to go. That was Monte's grandmother.
Monte, in spite of his ancestry, had jogged along, dodging the
responsibilities--the responsibilities that Peter Noyes rushed forward
to meet. He had ducked even love, even fatherhood. Like any quitter
on the gridiron, instead of tackling low and hard, he had side-stepped.
He had seen Chic in agony, and because of that had taken the next boat
for Marseilles. He had turned tail and run. He had seen Teddy, and
had run to what he thought was safe cover. If he paid the cost after
that, whose the fault? The least he could do now was to pay the cost
like a man.
Here was the salient necessity--to pay the cost like a man. There must
be no whining, no regretting, no side-stepping this time. He must make
her free by surrendering all his own rights, privileges, and title. He
must turn her over to Peter, who had played the game. He must do more.
He must see that she went to Peter. He must accomplish something
positive this time.
Beatrice had asked him to use his influence. It was slight, pitifully
slight, but he must do what he could. He must plan for them,
deliberately, more such opportunities as this one he had planned for
them unconsciously to-day. He must give them more chances to be
together. He had looked forward to having breakfast with her in the
morning. He must give up that. He must keep himself in the background
while he was here, and then, at the right moment, get out altogether.
Technically, he must desert her. He must make that supreme sacrifice.
At the moment when he stood ready to challenge the world for her--at
the moment when his heart within him burned to face for her all the
dangers from which he had run--at that point he must relinquish even
this privilege, and with smiling lips pose before the world and before
her as a quitter. He must not even use the deserter's prerogative of
running. He must leave her cheerfully and jauntily--as the care-free
ass known to her and to the world as just Monte.
The scorn of those words stung him white with helpless passion. She
had wished him always to be just Monte, because she thought that was
the best there was in him. As such he was at least harmless--a
good-natured chump to be trusted to do no harm, if he did no good. The
grandson of the Covington who had faced thirst and hunger and sudden
death for his woman, who had won for her a fortune fighting against
other strong men, the grandson of a man who had tackled life like a
man, must sacrifice his one chance to allow this ancestor to know his
own as a man. He could have met him chin up with Madame Covington on
his arm. He had that chance once.
How ever had he missed it? He sat there with his fists clenched
between his knees, asking himself the question over and over again. He
had known her for over a decade. As a school-girl he had seen her at
Chic's, and now ten years later he saw that even then she had within
her all that she now had. That clear, white forehead had been there
then; the black arched brows, the thin, straight nose, and the mobile
lips. He caught his breath as he thought of those lips. Her eyes,
too--but no, a change had taken place there. He had always thought of
her eyes as cold--as impenetrable. They were not that now. Once or
twice he thought he had seen into them a little way. Once or twice he
thought he had glimpsed gentle, fluttering figures in them. Once or
twice they had been like windows in a long-closed house, suddenly flung
open upon warm rooms filled with flowers. It made him dizzy now to
remember those moments.
He paced his room. In another week or two, if he had kept on,--if
Peter had not come,--he might have been admitted farther into that
house. He squared his shoulders. If he fought for his own even
now--if, man against man, he challenged Peter for her--he might have a
fighting chance. Was not that his right? In New York, in the world
outside New York, that was the law: a hard fight--the best man to win.
In war, favors might be shown; but in life, with a man's own at stake,
it was every one for himself. Peter himself would agree to that. He
was not one to ask favors. A fair fight was all he demanded. Then let
it be a clean, fair fight with bare knuckles to a finish. Let him show
himself to Marjory as the grandson of the man who gave him his name;
let him press his claims.
He was ready now to face the world with her. He was eager to do that.
Neither heights nor depths held any terrors for him. He envied
Chic--he envied even poor mad Hamilton.
Suddenly he saw a great truth. There is no difference between the
heights and the depths to those who are playing the game. It is only
those who sit in the grand-stand who see the difference. He ought to
have known that. The hard throws, the stinging tackles that used to
bring the grandstand to its feet, he never felt. The players knew
something that those upon the seats did not know, and thrilled with a
keener joy than the onlookers dreamed of.
If he could only be given another chance to do something for
Marjory--something that would bite into him, something that would twist
his body and maul him! If he could not face some serious physical
danger for her, then some great sacrifice--
Which was precisely the opportunity now offered. He had been
considering this sacrifice from his own personal point of view. He had
looked upon it as merely a personal punishment. But, after all, it was
for her. It was for her alone. Peter played no part in it whatever.
Neither did he himself. It was for her--for her!
Monte set his jaws. If, through Peter, he could bring her happiness,
then that was all the reward he could ask. Here was a man who loved
her, who would be good to her and fight hard for her. He was just the
sort of man he could trust her to. If he could see them settled in New
York, as Chic and Mrs. Chic were settled, see them start the brave
adventure, then he would have accomplished more than he had ever been
able to accomplish so far.
There was no need of thinking beyond that point. What became of his
life after that did not matter in the slightest. Wherever he was, he
would always know that she was where she belonged, and that was enough.
He must hold fast to that thought.
A knock at his door made him turn on his heels.
"Who's that?" he demanded.
"It's I--Noyes," came the answer. "Have you gone to bed yet?"
Monte swung open the door.
"Come in," he said.
"I thought I 'd like to talk with you, if it is n't too late,"
explained Peter nervously.
"On the contrary, you could n't have come more opportunely. I was just
thinking about you."
He led Peter to a chair.
"Sit down and make yourself comfortable."
Monte lighted a cigarette, sank into a near-by chair, and waited.
"Beatrice said she told you," began Peter.
"She did," answered Monte; "I'd congratulate you if it would n't be so
manifestly superfluous."
"I did n't realize she was an old friend of yours."
"I've known her for ten years," said Monte.
"It's wonderful to have known her as long as that. I envy you."
"That's strange, because I almost envy you."
Peter laughed.
"I have a notion I 'd be worried if you were n't already married,
Covington."
"Worried?"
"I think Mrs. Covington must be a good deal like Marjory."
"She is," admitted Monte.
"So, if I had n't been lucky enough to find you already suited, you
might have given me a race."
"You forget that the ladies themselves have some voice in such
matters," Monte replied slowly.
"I have better reasons than you for not forgetting that," answered
Peter.
Monte started.
"I was n't thinking of you," he put in quickly. "Besides, you did n't
give Marjory a fair chance. Her aunt had just died, and she--well, she
has learned a lot since then."
"She has changed!" exclaimed Peter. "I noticed it at once; but I was
almost afraid to believe it. She seems steadier--more serious."
"Yes."
"You've seen a good deal of her recently?"
"For the last two or three weeks," answered Monte.
"You don't mind my talking to you about her?"
"Not at all."
"As you're an old friend of hers, I feel as if I had the right."
"Go ahead."
"It seems to me as if she had suddenly grown from a girl to a woman. I
saw the woman in her all the time. It--it was to her I spoke before.
Maybe, as you said, the woman was n't quite ready."
"I'm sure of it."
"You speak with conviction."
"As I told you, I've come to know her better these last few weeks than
ever before. I 've had a chance to study her. She's had a chance,
too, to study--other men. There's been one in particular--"
Peter straightened a bit.
"One in particular?" he demanded aggressively.
"No one you need fear," replied Monte. "In a way, it's because of him
that your own chances have improved."
"How?"
"It has given her an opportunity to compare him with you."
"Are you at liberty to tell me about him?"
"Yes; I think I have that right," replied Monte; "I'll not be violating
any confidences, because what I know about him I know from the man
himself. Furthermore, it was I who introduced him to her."
"Oh--a friend of yours."
"Not a friend, exactly; an acquaintance of long standing would be more
accurate. I've been in touch with him all my life, but it's only
lately I've felt that I was really getting to know him."
"Is he here in Nice now?" inquired Peter.
"No," answered Monte slowly. "He went away a little while ago. He
went suddenly--God knows where. I don't think he will ever come back."
"You can't help pitying the poor devil if he was fond of her," said
Peter.
"But he was n't good enough for her. It was his own fault too, so he
is n't deserving even of pity."
"Probably that makes it all the harder. What was the matter with him?"
"He was one of the kind we spoke of the other night--the kind who
always sits in the grandstand instead of getting into the game."
"Pardon me if I 'm wrong, but--I thought you spoke rather
sympathetically of that kind the other night."
"I was probably reflecting his views," Monte parried.
"That accounts for it," returned Peter. "Somehow, it did n't sound
consistent in you. I wish I could see your face, Covington."
"We're sitting in the dark here," answered Monte.
"Go on."
"Marjory liked this fellow well enough because--well, because he looked
more or less like a man. He was big physically, and all that.
Besides, his ancestors were all men, and I suppose they handed down
something."
"What was his name?"
"I think I 'd rather not tell you that. It's of no importance. This
is all strictly in confidence."
"I understand."
"So she let herself see a good deal of him. He was able to amuse her.
That kind of fellow generally can entertain a woman. In fact, that is
about all they are good for. When it comes down to the big things,
there is n't much there. They are well enough for the holidays, and I
guess that was all she was thinking about. She had had a hard time,
and wanted amusement. Maybe she fancied that was all she ever wanted;
but--well, there was more in her than she knew herself."
"A thousand times more!" exclaimed Peter.
"She found it out. Perhaps, after all, this fellow served his purpose
in helping her to realize that."
"Perhaps."
"So, after that, he left."
"And he cared for her?"
"Yes."
"Poor devil!"
"I don't know," mused Monte. "He seemed, on the whole, rather glad
that he had been able to do that much for her."
"I 'd like to meet that man some day. I have a notion there is more in
him than you give him credit for, Covington."
"I doubt it."
"A man who would give up her--"
"She's the sort of woman a man would want to do his level best for,"
broke in Monte. "If that meant giving her up,--if the fellow felt he
was n't big enough for her,--then he could n't do anything else, could
he?"
"The kind big enough to consider that would be big enough for her,"
declared Peter.
Monte drew a quick breath.
"Do you mind repeating that?"
"I say the man really loving her who would make such a sacrifice comes
pretty close to measuring up to her standard."
"I think he would like to hear that. You see, it's the first real
sacrifice he ever undertook."
"It may be the making of him."
"Perhaps."
"He'll always have her before him as an ideal. When you come in touch
with such a woman as she--you can't lose, Covington, no matter how
things turn out."
"I 'll tell him that too."
"It's what I tell myself over and over again. To-day--well, I had an
idea there must be some one in the background of her life I did n't
know about."
"You 'd better get that out of your head. This man is n't even in the
background, Noyes."
"I 'm not so sure. I thought she seemed worried. I tried to make her
tell me, but she only laughed. She'd face death with a smile, that
woman. I got to thinking about it in my room, and that's why I came
down here to you. You've seen more of her these last few months than I
have."
"Not months; only weeks."
"And this other--I don't want to pry into her affairs, but we're all
just looking to her happiness, are n't we?"
"Consider this other man as dead and gone," cut in Monte. "He was
lucky to be able to play the small part in her life that he did play."
"But something is disturbing her. I know her voice; I know her laugh.
If I did n't have those to go by, there'd be something else. I can
_feel_ when she's herself and when she is n't."
Monte grasped his chair arms. He had studied her closely the last few
days, and had not been able to detect the fact that she was worried.
He had thought her gayer, more light-hearted, than usual. It was so
that she had held herself before him. If Peter was right,--and Monte
did not doubt the man's superior intuition,--then obviously she was
worrying over the technicality that still held her a prisoner. Until
she was actually free she would live up to the letter of her contract.
This would naturally tend to strain her intercourse with Peter. She
was not one to take such things lightly.
Monte rose, crossed the room, and placed his hand on Peter's shoulder.
"I think I can assure you," he said slowly, "that if there is anything
bothering her now, it is nothing that will last. All you've got to do
is to be patient and hold on."
"You seem to be mighty confident."
"If you knew what I know, you'd be confident too."
Peter frowned.
"I don't like discussing these things, but--they mean so much."
"So much to all of us," nodded Monte. "Now, the thing to do is to turn
in and get a good night's sleep. After all, there _is_ something in
keeping normal."
CHAPTER XXI
BACK TO SCHEDULE
Monte rose the next morning to find the skies leaden and a light,
drizzling rain falling that promised to continue all day. It was the
sort of weather that ordinarily left him quite helpless, because, not
caring for either bridge or billiards, nothing remained but to pace the
hotel piazza--an amusement that under the most favorable conditions has
its limitations. But to-day--even though the rain had further
interfered with his arrangements by making it necessary to cancel the
trip he had planned for Marjory and Peter to Cannes--the weather was an
inconsequential incident. It did not matter greatly to him whether it
rained or not.
Not that he was depressed to indifference. Rather he was conscious of
a certain nervous excitement akin to exhilaration that he had not felt
since the days of the big games, when he used to get up with his blood
tingling in heady anticipation of the task before him. He took his
plunge with hearty relish, and rubbed his body until it glowed with the
Turkish towel.
His arm was free of the sling now, and, though it was still a bit
stiff, it was beginning to limber up nicely. In another week it would
be as good as new, with only a slight scar left to serve as a reminder
of the episode that had led to so much. In time that too would
disappear; and then-- But he was not concerned with the future. That,
any more than the weather, was no affair of his.
This morning Marjory would perforce remain indoors, and so if he went
to see her it was doubtful whether he would be interfering with any
plans she might have made for Peter. An hour was all he
needed--perhaps less. This would leave the two the remainder of the
day free--and, after that, all the days to come. There would be
hundreds of them--all the days of the summer, all the days of the fall,
all the days of the winter, and all the days of the spring; then
another summer, and so a new cycle full of days twenty-four hours long.
Out of these he was going to take one niggardly hour. Nor was he
asking that little for his own sake. Eager as he was--as he had been
for two weeks--for the privilege of just being alone with her, he would
have foregone that now, had it been possible to write her what he had
to say. In a letter it is easy to leave unsaid so many things. But he
must face her leaving the same things unsaid, because she was a woman
who demanded that a man speak what he had to say man-fashion. He must
do that, even though there would be little truth in his words. He must
make her believe the lie. He cringed at the word. But, after all, it
was the truth to her. That was what he must keep always in mind. He
had only to help her keep her own conception. He was coming to her,
not in his proper person, but as just Monte. As such he would be
telling the truth.
He shaved and dressed with some care. The rain beat against the
window, and he did not hear it. He went down to breakfast and faced
the vacant chair which he had ordered to be left at his table. She had
never sat there, though at every meal it stood ready for her. Peter
suggested once that he join them at their table until madame returned;
but Monte had shaken his head.
Monte did not telephone her until ten, and then he asked simply if he
might come over for an hour.
"Certainly," she answered: "I shall be glad to see you. It's a
miserable day, Monte."
"It's raining a bit, but I don't mind."
"That's because you're so good-natured."
He frowned. It was a privilege he had over the telephone.
"Anyhow, what you can't help you may as well grin and bear."
"I suppose so, Monte," she answered. "But if I 'm to grin, I must
depend upon you to make me."
"I'll be over in five minutes," he replied.
She needed him to make her grin! That was all he was good for. Thank
Heaven, he had it in his power to do this much; as soon as he told her
she was to be free again, the smile would return to her lips.
He went at once to the hotel, and she came down to meet him, looking
very serious--and very beautiful. Her deep eyes seemed deeper than
ever, perhaps because of a trace of dark below them. She had color,
but it was bright crimson against a dead white. Her lips were more
mobile than usual, as if she were having difficulty in controlling
them--as if many unspoken things were struggling there for expression.
When he took her warm hand, she raised her head a little, half closing
her eyes. It was clear that she was worrying more than even he had
suspected. Poor little woman, her conscience was probably harrying the
life out of her. This must not be.
They went upstairs to the damp, desolate sun parlor, and he undertook
at once the business in hand.
"It has n't worked very well, has it, Marjory?" he began, with a forced
smile.
Turning aside her head, she answered in a voice scarcely above a
whisper:--
"No, Monte."
"But," he went on, "there's no sense in getting stirred up about that."
"It was such a--a hideous mistake," she said.
"That's where you're wrong," he declared. "We've tried a little
experiment, and it failed. Is n't that all there is to it?"
"All?"
"Absolutely all," he replied. "What we did n't reckon with was running
across old friends who would take the adventure so seriously. If we'd
only gone to Central Africa or Asia Minor--"
"It would have been just the same if we'd gone to the North Pole," she
broke in.
"You think so?"
"I know it. Women can't trifle with--with such things without getting
hurt."
"I 'm sorry. I suppose I should have known."
"You were just trying to be kind, Monte," she answered. "Don't take
any of the blame. It's all mine."
"I urged you."
"What of that?" she demanded. "It was for me to come or not to come.
That is one part of her life over which a woman has absolute control.
I came because I was so utterly selfish I did not realize what I was
doing."
"And I?" he asked quickly.
"You?"
She turned and tried to meet his honest eyes.
"I'm afraid I've spoiled your holiday," she murmured.
He clinched his jaws against the words that surged to his lips.
"If we could leave those last few weeks just as they were--" he said.
"Can't we call that evening I met you in Paris the beginning, and the
day we reached Nice the end?"
"Only there is no end," she cried.
"Let the day we reached the Hotel des Roses be the end. I should like
to go away feeling that the whole incident up to then was something
detached from the rest of our lives."
"You're going--where?" she gasped.
He tried to smile.
"I 'll have to pick up my schedule again."
"You're going--when?"
"In a day or two now," he replied. "You see--it's necessary for me to
desert you."
"Monte!"
"The law demands the matter of six months' absence--perhaps a little
longer. I 'll have this looked up and will notify you. Desertion is
an ugly word; but, after all, it sounds better than cruel and abusive
treatment."
"It's I who deserted," she said.
He waved the argument aside.
"Anyway, it's only a technicality. The point is that I must show the
world that--that we did not mean what we said. So I 'll go on to
England."
"And play golf," she added for him.
He nodded.
"I 'll probably put up a punk game. Never was much good at golf. But
it will help get me back into the rut. Then I 'll sail about the first
of August for New York and put a few weeks into camp."
"Then you'll go on to Cambridge."
"And hang around until after the Yale game."
"Then--"
"How many months have I been gone already?"
"Four."
"Oh, yes; then I'll go back to New York."
"What will you do there, Monte?"
"I--I don't know. Maybe I'll call on Chic some day."
"If they should ever learn!" cried Marjory.
"Eh?"
Monte passed his hand over his forehead.
"There is n't any danger of that, is there?"
"I don't think I'll ever dare meet _her_ again."
Monte squared his shoulders.
"See here, little woman; you must n't feel this way. It won't do at
all. That's why I thought if you could only separate these last few
weeks from everything else--just put them one side and go from
there--it would be so much better. You see, we've got to go on
and--holy smoke! this has got to be as if it never happened. You have
your life ahead of you and I have mine. We can't let this spoil all
the years ahead. You--why, you--"
She looked up. It was a wonder he did not take her in his arms in that
moment. He held himself as he had once held himself when eleven men
were trying to push him and his fellows over the last three yards
separating them from a goal.
"It's necessary to go on, is n't it?" he repeated helplessly.
"Yes, yes," she answered quickly. "You must go back to your schedule
just as soon as ever you can. As soon as we're over the ugly part--"
"The divorce?"
"As soon as we're over that, everything will be all right again," she
nodded.
"Surely," he agreed.
"But we must n't remember anything. That's quite impossible. The
thing to do is to forget."
She appeared so earnest that he hastened to reassure her.
"Then we'll forget."
He said it so cheerfully, she was ready to believe him.
"That ought to be easy for you," he added.
"For me?"
"I 'm going to leave you with Peter."
She caught her breath. She did not dare answer.
"I've seen a good deal of him lately," he continued. "We've come to
know each other rather intimately, as sometimes men do in a short while
when they have interests in common."
"You and Peter have interests in common!" she exclaimed.
He appeared uneasy.
"We're both Harvard, you know."
"I see."
"Of course, I 've had to do more or less hedging on account--of Madame
Covington."
"I'm sorry, Monte."
"You need n't be, because it was she who introduced me to him. And, I
tell you, he's fine and big and worth while all through. But you know
that."
"Yes."
"That's why I 'm going to feel quite safe about leaving you with him."
She started. That word "safe" was like a stab with a penknife. She
would have rather had him strike her a full blow in the face than use
it. Yet, in its miserable fashion, it expressed all that he had sought
through her--all that she had allowed him to seek. From the first they
had each sought safety, because they did not dare face the big things.
Now, at the moment she was ready, the same weakness that she had
encouraged in him was helping take him away from her. And the pitiful
tragedy of it was that Peter was helping too, and then challenging her
to accept still graver dangers through him. It was a pitiful tangle,
and yet one that she must allow to continue.
"You mean he'll help you not to worry about me?"
"That's it," he nodded. "Because I've seen the man side of him, and
it's even finer than the side you see."
Her lips came together.
"There's no reason why you should feel responsibility for me even
without Peter," she protested.
She was seated in one of the wicker chairs, chin in hand. He stepped
toward her.
"You don't think I'd be cad enough to desert my wife actually?" he
demanded.
He seemed so much in earnest that for a second the color flushed the
chalk-white portions of her cheeks.
"Sit down, Monte," she pleaded. "I--I did n't expect you to take it
like that. I 'm afraid Peter is making you too serious. After all,
you know, I 'm of age. I 'm not a child."
He sat down, bending toward her.
"We've both acted more or less like children," he said gently. "Now I
guess the time has come for us to grow up. Peter will help you do
that."
"And you?"
"He has helped me already. And when he gets his eyes back--"
"You think there is a chance for that?"
"Just one chance," he answered.
"Oh!" she cried.
"It's a big opportunity," he said.
She rose and went to the window, where she looked out upon the gray
ocean and the slanting rain and a world grown dull and sodden. He
followed her there, but with his shoulders erect now.
"I 'm going now," he said. "I think I shall take the night train for
Paris. I want to leave the machine--the machine we came down here
in--for you."
"Don't--please don't."
"It's for you and Peter. The thing for you both to do is to get out in
it every day."
"I--I don't want to."
"You mean--"
He placed his hand upon her arm, and she ventured one more look into
his eyes. He was frowning. She must not allow that. She must send
him away in good spirits. That was the least she could do. So she
forced a smile.
"All right," she promised; "if it will make you more comfortable."
"It would worry me a lot if I thought you were n't going to be happy."
"I'll go out every fair day."
"That's fine."
He took a card from his pocket and scribbled his banker's address upon
it.
"If anything should come up where--where I can be of any use, you can
always reach me through this address."
She took the card. Even to the end he was good--good and four-square.
He was so good that her throat ached. She could not endure this very
much longer. He extended his hand.
"S'long and good luck," he said.
"I--I hope your golf will be better than you think."
Then he said a peculiar thing. He seldom swore, and seldom lost his
head as completely as he did that second. But, looking her full in the
eyes, he ejaculated below his breath:--
"Damn golf!"
The observation was utterly irrelevant. Turning, he clicked his heels
together like a soldier and went out. The door closed behind him. For
a second her face was illumined as with a great joy. In a sort of
ecstasy, she repeated his words.
"He said," she whispered--"he said, 'Damn golf.'" Then she threw
herself into a wicker chair and began to sob.
"Oh!" she choked. "If--if--"
CHAPTER XXII
A CONFESSION
Monte left Nice on the twentieth of July, to join--as Peter
supposed--Madame Covington in Paris. Monte himself had been extremely
ambiguous about his destination, being sure of only one fact: that he
should not return inside of a year, if he did then. Peter had asked
for his address, and Monte had given him the same address that he gave
Marjory.
"I want to keep in touch with you," Peter said.
Peter missed the man. On the ride with Marjory that he enjoyed the
next day after Monte's departure, he talked a great deal of him.
"I 'd like to have seen into his eyes," he told her. "I kept feeling I
'd find something there more than I got hold of in his voice and the
grip of his hand."
"He has blue eyes," she told him, "and they are clean as a child's."
"They are a bit sad?"
"Monte's eyes sad?" she exclaimed. "What made you think so?"
"Perhaps because, from what he let drop the other night, I gathered he
was n't altogether happy with Mrs. Covington."
"He told you that?"
"No; not directly," he assured her. "He's too loyal. I may be utterly
mistaken; only he was rather vague as to why she was not here with him."
"She was not with him," Marjory answered slowly. "She was not with him
because she was n't big enough to deserve him."
"Then it's a fact there's a tragedy in his life?"
"Not in his--in hers," she answered passionately.
"How can that be?"
"Because she's the one who realizes the truth."
"But she's the one who went away."
"Because of that. It's a miserable story, Peter."
"You knew her intimately?"
"A great many years."
"I think Covington said he had known you a long time."
"Yes."
"Then, knowing her and knowing him, was n't there anything you could
do?"
"I did what I could," she answered wearily.
"Perhaps that explains why he hurried back to her."
"He has n't gone to her. He'll never go back to her. She deserted
him, and now--he's going to make it permanent."
"A divorce?"
"Yes, Peter," she answered, with a little shiver.
"You're taking it hard."
"I know all that he means to her," she choked.
"She loves him?"
"With all her heart and soul."
"And he does n't know it?"
"Why, he would n't believe it--if she told him. She can never let him
know it. She'd deny it if he asked her. She loves him enough for
that."
"Good Lord!" exclaimed Peter. "There's a mistake there somewhere."
"The mistake came first," she ran on. "Oh, I don't know why I'm
telling you these things, except that it is a relief to tell them to
some one."
"Tell me all about it," he encouraged her. "I knew there was something
on your mind."
"Peter," she said earnestly, "can you imagine a woman so selfish that
she wanted to marry just to escape the responsibilities of marriage?"
"It is n't possible," he declared.
Her cheeks were a vivid scarlet. Had he been able to see them, she
could not have gone on.
"A woman so selfish," she faltered ahead, "that she preferred a
make-believe husband to a real husband, because--because so she thought
she would be left free."
"Free for what?" he demanded.
"To live."
"When love and marriage and children are all there is to life?" he
asked.
She caught her breath.
"You see, she did not know that then. She thought all those things
called for the sacrifice of her freedom."
"What freedom?" he demanded again. "It's when we're alone that we're
slaves--slaves to ourselves. A woman alone, a man alone, living to
himself alone--what is there for him? He can only go around and around
in a pitifully small circle--a circle that grows smaller and smaller
with every year. Between twenty and thirty a man can exhaust all there
is in life for himself alone. He has eaten and slept and traveled and
played until his senses have become dull. Perhaps a woman lasts a
little longer, but not much longer. Then they are locked away in
themselves until they die."
"Peter!" she cried in terror.
"It's only as we live in others that we live forever," he ran on. "It
is only by toiling and sacrificing and suffering and loving that we
become immortal. It is so we acquire real freedom."
"Yes, Peter," she agreed, with a gasp.
"Could n't you make her understand that?"
"She does understand. That's the pity of it."
"And Covington?"
"It's in him to understand; only--she lost the right to make him
understand. She--she debased herself. So she must sacrifice herself
to get clean again. She must make even greater sacrifices than any she
cowed away from. She must do this without any of the compensations
that come to those who have been honest and unafraid."
"What of him?"
"He must never know. He'll go round and round his little circle, and
she must watch him."
"It's terrible," he murmured. "It will be terrible for her to watch
him do that. If you had told him how she felt--"
"God forbid!"
"Or if you had only told me, so that I could have told him--"
She seized Peter's arm.
"You would n't have dared!"
"I'd dare anything to save two people from such torment."
"You--you don't think he will worry?"
"I think he is worrying a great deal."
"Only for the moment," she broke in. "But soon--in a week or two--he
will be quite himself again. He has a great many things to do. He has
tennis and--and golf."
She checked herself abruptly. ("Damn golf!" Monte had said.)
"There's too much of a man in him now to be satisfied with such
things," said Peter. "It's a pity--it's a pity there are not two of
you, Marjory."
"Of me?"
"He thinks a great deal of you. If he had met you before he met this
other--"
"What are you saying, Peter?"
"That you're the sort of woman who could have called out in him an
honest love."
There, beside Peter who could not see, Marjory bent low and buried her
face in her hands.
"You 're the sort of woman," he went on, "who could have roused the man
in him that has been waiting all this time for some one like you."
How Peter was hurting her! How he was pinching her with red-hot irons!
It hurt so much that she was glad. Here, at last, she was beginning
her sacrifice for Monte. So she made neither moan nor groan, nor
covered her ears, but took her punishment like a man.
"Some one else must do all that," she said.
"Yes," he answered. "Or his life will be wasted. He needs to suffer.
He needs to give up. This thing we call a tragedy may be the making of
him."
"For some one else," she repeated.
Peter was fumbling about for her hand. Suddenly she straightened
herself.
"It must be for some one else," he said hoarsely--"because I want you
for myself. In time--you must be mine. With the experience of those
two before us, we must n't make the same mistake ourselves. I--I was
n't going to tell you this until I had my eyes back. But, heart o'
mine, I 've held in so long. Here in the dark one gets so much alone.
And being alone is what kills."
She was hiding her hand from him.
"I can't find your hand," he whispered, like a child lost in the dark.
Summoning all her strength, she placed her hand within his. "It is
cold!" he cried.
Yet the day was warm. They were speeding through a sunlighted country
of olive trees and flowers in bloom--a warm world and tender.
He drew her fingers to his lips and kissed them passionately. She
suffered it, closing her eyes against the pain.
"I've wanted you so all these months!" he cried. "I should n't have
let you go in the first place. I should n't have let you go."
"No, Peter," she answered.
"And now that I've found you again, you'll stay?"
He was lifting his face to hers--straining to see her. To have
answered any way but as he pleaded would have been to strike that
upturned face.
"I--I 'll try to stay," she faltered.
"I 'll make you!" he breathed. "I 'll hold you tight, soul of mine.
Would you--would you kiss my eyes?"
Holding her breath, Marjory lightly brushed each of his eyes with her
lips.
"It's like balm," he whispered. "I've dreamed at night of this."
"Every day I'll do it," she said. "Only--for a little while--you 'll
not ask for anything more, Peter?"
"Not until some day they open--in answer to that call," he replied.
"I did n't mean that, Peter," she said hurriedly. "Only I'm so mixed
up myself."
"It's so new to you," he nodded. "To me it's like a day foreseen a
dozen years. Long before I saw you I knew I was getting ready for you.
Now--what do a few weeks matter?"
"It may be months, Peter, before I'm quite steady."
"Even if it's years," he exclaimed, "I've felt your lips."
"Only on your eyes," she cried in terror.
"I--I would n't dare to feel them except on my eyes--for a little
while. Even there they take away my breath."
CHAPTER XXIII
LETTERS
Letter from Peter Noyes to Monte Covington, received by the latter at
the Hotel Normandie, Paris, France:--
NICE, FRANCE, July 22.
_Dear Covington_:--
I don't know whether you can make out this scrawl, because I have to
feel my way across the paper; but I'm sitting alone in my room, aching
to talk with you as we used to talk. If you were here I know you would
be glad to listen, because--suddenly all I told you about has come true.
Riding to Cannes the very next day after you left, I spoke to her
and--she listened. It was all rather vague and she made no promises,
but she listened. In a few weeks or months or years, now, she'll be
mine for all time. She does n't want me to tell Beatrice, and there is
no one else to tell except you--so forgive me, old man, if I let myself
loose.
Besides, in a way, you're responsible. We were talking of you, because
we missed you. You have a mighty good friend in her, Covington. She
knows you--the real you that I thought only I had glimpsed. She sees
the man in the game--not the man in the grand-stand. Her Covington is
the man they used to give nine long Harvards for. I never heard that
in front of my name. I was a grind--a "greasy grind," they used to
call me. It did n't hurt, for I smiled in rather a superior sort of
way at the men I thought were wasting their energy on the gridiron.
But, after all, you fellows got something out of it that the rest of us
did n't get. A 'Varsity man remains a 'Varsity man all his life.
To-day you stand before her as a 'Varsity man. I think she always
thinks of you as in a red sweater with a black "H." Any time that you
feel you're up against anything hard, that ought to help you.
We talked a great deal of you, as I said, and I find myself now
thinking more of you than of myself in connection with her. I don't
understand it. Perhaps it's because she seems so alone in the world,
and you are the most intimate friend she has. Perhaps it's because
you've seen so much more of her than I in these last few months.
Anyway, I have a feeling that somehow you are an integral part of her.
I've tried to puzzle out the relationship, and I can't. "Brother" does
not define it; neither does "comrade." If you were not already
married, I'd almost suspect her of being in love with you.
I know that sounds absurd. I know it is absurd. She is n't the kind
to allow her emotions to get away from her like that. But I'll say
this much, Covington: that if we three were to start fresh, I'd stand a
mighty poor chance with her.
This is strange talk from a man who less than six hours ago became
officially engaged. I told her that I had let her go once, and that
now I had found her again I wanted her to stay. And she said, "I'll
try." That was n't very much, Covington, was it? But I seized the
implied promise as a drowning man does a straw. It was so much more
than anything I have hoped for.
I should have kept her that time I found her on the little farm in
Connecticut. If I had been a little more insistent then, I think she
would have come with me. But I was afraid of her money. It was
rumored that her aunt left her a vast fortune, and--you know the
mongrels that hound a girl in that position, Covington? I was afraid
she might think I was one of the pack. She was frightened--bewildered.
I should have snatched her away from them all and gone off with her. I
was earning enough to support her decently, and I should have thought
of nothing else. Instead of that I held back a little, and so lost
her, as I thought. She sailed away, and I returned to my work like a
madman--and I nearly died.
Now I feel alive clear to my finger-tips. I 'm going to get my eyes
back. I have n't the slightest doubt in the world about that. Already
I feel the magic of the new balm that has been applied. They don't
ache any more. Sitting here to-night without my shade, I can hold them
open and catch the feeble light that filters in from the street lamps
at a distance. It is only a question of a few months, perhaps weeks,
perhaps days. The next time we meet I shall be able to see you.
You won't object to hearing a man rave a little, Covington? If you do,
you can tear up this right here. But I know I can't say anything good
about Marjory that you won't agree with. Maybe, however, you'd call my
present condition abnormal. Perhaps it is; but I wonder if it is n't
part of every normal man's life to be abnormal to this extent at least
once--to see, for once, this staid old world through the eyes of a
prince of the ancient city of Bagdad; to thrill with the magic and
gorgeous beauty of it? It shows what might always be, if one were poet
enough to sustain the mood.
Here am I, a plugging lawyer of the Borough of Manhattan, City of New
York, State of New York--which is just about as far away from the city
of Bagdad as you can get. I'm concerned mainly with certain details of
corporation law--the structure of soulless business institutions which
were never heard of in Bagdad. My daily path takes me from certain
uptown bachelor quarters through the subway to a certain niche in a
downtown cave dwelling. Then--presto, she comes. I pass over all that
intervened, because it is no longer important, but--presto again, I
find myself here a prince in some royal castle of Bagdad, counting the
moments until another day breaks and I can feel the touch of my
princess's hand. Even my dull eyes count for me, because so I can
fancy myself, if I choose, in some royal apartment, surrounded by
hanging curtains of silk, priceless marbles, and ornaments of gold and
silver, with many silent eunuchs awaiting my commands. From my windows
I'm at liberty to imagine towers and minarets and domes of copper.
Always she, my princess, is somewhere in the background, when she is
not actually by my side. When I saw her before, Covington, I marveled
at her eyes--those deep, wonderful eyes that told you so little and
made you dream so much. I saw her hair too, and her straight nose, and
her beautiful lips. Those things I see now as I saw them then. I must
wait a little while really to see them again. In their place, however,
I have now her voice and the sound of her footsteps. To hear her
coming, just to hear the light fall of her feet upon the ground, is
like music.
But when she speaks, Covington, then all other sounds cease, and she
speaks alone to me in a world grown silent to listen. There is some
quality in that voice that gets into me--that reaches and vibrates
certain hidden strings I did not know were there. So sweet is the
music that I can hardly give enough attention to make out the meaning
of her words. What she says does not so much matter as that she should
be speaking to me--to my ears alone.
And these things are merely the superficialities of her. There still
remains the princess herself below these wonderful externals. There
still remains the woman herself. Woman, any woman, is marvelous
enough, Covington. When you think of all they stand for, the fineness
of them compared with our man grossness, that wonderful power of
creation in them, their exquisite delicacy, combined with the
big-souled capacity for sacrifice and suffering that dwarfs any of our
petty burdens into insignificance--God knows, a man should bow his knee
before the least of them. But when to all those general attributes of
the sex you add that something more born in a woman like Marjory--what
in the world can a man do big enough to deserve the charge of such a
soul? In the midst of all my princely emotions, that thought makes me
humble, Covington.
I fear I have rambled a good deal, old man. I can't read over what I
have been scribbling here, so I must let it go as it is. But I wanted
to tell you some of these things that are rushing through my head all
the time, because I knew you would be glad for me and glad for her. Or
does my own joy result in such supreme selfishness that I am tempted to
intrude it upon others? I don't believe so, because there is no one
else in the world to whom I would venture to write as I 've written to
you.
I'm not asking you to answer, because what I should want to hear from
you I would n't allow any one else to read. So tear this up and forget
it if you want. Some day I shall meet you again and see you. Then I
can talk to you face to face.
Yours,
PETER J. NOYES.
Sitting alone in his room at the Normandie, Monte read this through.
Then his hands dropped to his side and the letter fell from them to the
floor.
"Oh, my God!" he said. "Oh, my God!"
Letter from Madame Covington to her husband, Monte Covington, which the
latter never received at all because it was never sent. It was never
meant to be sent. It was written merely to save herself from doing
something rash, something for which she could never forgive
herself--like taking the next train to Paris and claiming this man as
if he were her own:--
_Dearest Prince of my Heart_:--
You've been gone from me twelve hours. For twelve hours you've left me
here all alone. I don't know how I've lived. I don't know how I'm
going to get through the night and to-morrow. Only there won't be any
to-morrow. There'll never be anything more than periods of twelve
hours, until you come back: just from dawn to dark, and then from dark
to dawn, over and over again. Each period must be fought through as it
comes, with no thought about the others. I 'm beginning on the third.
The morning will bring the fourth.
Each one is like a lifetime--a birth and a death. And oh, my Prince, I
shall soon be very, very old. I don't dare look in the mirror
to-night, for fear of seeing how old I've grown since morning. I
remember a word they used on shipboard when the waves threw the big
propeller out of the water and the full power of the engines was wasted
on air. They called it "racing." It was bad for the ship to have this
energy go for nothing. It racked her and made her tremble and groan.
I've been racing ever since you went, churning the air to no purpose,
with a power that was meant to drive me ahead. I 'm right where I
started after it all.
Dearest heart of mine, I love you. Though I tremble away from those
words, I must put them down for once in black and white. Though I tear
them up into little pieces so small that no one can read them, I must
write them once. It is such a relief, here by myself, to be honest.
If you were here and I were honest, I 'd stand very straight and look
you fair in the eyes and tell you that over and over again. "I love
you, Monte," I would say. "I love you with all my heart and soul,
Monte," I would say. "Right or wrong, coward that I am or not, whether
it is good for you or not, I love you, Monte," I would say. And, if
you wished, I would let you kiss me. And, if you would let me, I would
kiss you on your dear tousled hair, on your forehead, on your eyes--
That is where I kissed Peter to-day. I will tell you here, as I would
tell you standing before you. I kissed Peter on his eyes, and I have
promised to kiss him again upon his eyes to-morrow--if to-morrow comes.
I did it because he said it would help him to see again. And if he
sees again--why, Monte, if he sees again, then he will see how absurd
it is that he should ask me to love him.
Blind as he is, he almost saw that to-day, when he made me promise to
try to stay by his side. With his eyes full open, then he will be able
to read my eyes. So I shall kiss him there as often as he wishes.
Then, when he understands, I shall not fear for him. He is a man.
Only, if I told him with my lips, he would not understand. He must
find out for himself. Then he will throw back his shoulders and take
the blow--as we all of us have had to take our blows. It will be no
worse for him than for you, dear, or for me.
It is not as I kissed him that I should kiss you. How silly it is of
men to ask for kisses when, if they come at all, they come unasked.
What shall I do with all of mine that are for you alone? I throw them
out across the dark to you--here and here and here.
I wonder what you are doing at this moment? I have wondered so about
every moment since you went. Because I cannot know, I feel as if I
were being robbed. At times I fancy I can see as clearly as if I were
with you. You went to the station and bought your ticket and got into
your compartment. I could see you sitting there smoking, your eyes
turned out the window. I could see what you saw, but I could not tell
of what you were thinking. And that is what counts. That is the only
thing that counts. There are those about me who watch me going my
usual way, but how little they know of what a change has come over me!
How little even Peter knows, who imagines he knows me so well.
I see you reaching Paris and driving to your hotel. I wonder if you
are at the Normandie. I don't even know that. I'd like to know that.
I wonder if you would dare sleep in your old room. Oh, I'd like to
know that. It would be so restful to think of you there. But what, if
there, are you thinking about? About me, at all? I don't want you to
think about me, but I 'd die if I knew you did _not_ think about me.
I don't want you to be worried, dear you. I won't have you unhappy.
You said once, "Is n't it possible to care a little without caring too
much?" Now I 'm going to ask you: "Is n't it possible for you to think
of me a little without thinking too much?" If you could remember some
of those evenings on the ride to Nice,--even if with a smile,--that
would be better than nothing. If you could remember that last night
before we got to Nice, when--when I looked up at you and something
almost leaped from my eyes to yours. If you could remember that with
just a little knowledge of what it meant--not enough to make you
unhappy, but enough to make you want to see me again. Could you do
that without getting uncomfortable--without mixing up your schedule?
I cried a little right here, Monte. It was a silly thing to do. But
you're alone in Paris, where we were together, and I'm alone here. It
is still raining. I think it is going to rain forever. I can't
imagine ever seeing the blue sky again. If I did, it would only make
me think of those glorious days between Paris and Nice. How wonderful
it was that it never rained at all. The sky was always pink in the
east when I woke up, and we saw it grow pink again at night, side by
side. Then the purple of the night, with the myriad silver stars, each
one beautiful in itself.
At night you always seemed to me to grow bigger than ever--inches
taller and broader, until some evenings when I bade you good-night I
was almost afraid of you. Because as you grew bigger I grew smaller.
I used to think that, if you took a notion to do so, you'd just pick me
up and carry me off. If you only had!
If you had only said, "We'll quit this child's play. You'll come with
me and we'll make a home and settle down, like Chic."
I'd have been a good wife to you, Monte. Honest, I would--if you'd
done like that any time before I met Peter and became ashamed. Up to
that point I'd have gone with you if you had loved me enough to take
me. Only, you did n't love me. That was the trouble, Monte. I'd made
you think I did not want to be loved. Then I made you think I was n't
worth loving. Then, when Peter came and made me see and hang my
head,--why, then it was too late, even though you had wanted to take me.
But you don't know, and never will know, what a good wife I'd have
been. But I would have tried to lead you a little, too. I would have
watched over you and been at your command, but I would have tried to
guide you into doing something worth while.
Perhaps we could have done something together worth while. You have a
great deal of money, Monte, and I have a great deal. We have more than
is good for us. I think if we had worked together we could have done
something for other people with it. I never thought of that until
lately; but the other evening, after you had been talking about your
days in college, I lay awake in bed, thinking how nice it would be if
we could do something for some of the young fellows there now who do
not have money enough. I imagined myself going back to Cambridge with
you some day and calling on the president or the dean, and hearing you
say to him: "Madame Covington and I have decided that we want to help
every year one or more young men needing help. If you will send to us
those you approve of, we will lend them enough to finish their course."
I thought it would be nicer to lend the money than give it to them,
because they would feel better about it. And they could be as long as
they wished in paying it back, or if they fell into hard luck need
never pay it back.
So every year we would start as many as we could, each of us paying
half. They would come to us, and we would get to know them, and we
would watch them through, and after that watch them fight the good
fight. Why, in no time, Monte, we would have quite a family to watch
over; and they would come to you for advice, and perhaps sometimes to
me. Think what an interest that would add to your life! It would be
so good for you, Monte. And good for me, too. Even if we had--oh,
Monte, we might in time have had boys of our own in Harvard too! Then
they would have selected other boys for us, and that would have been
good for them too.
Here by myself I can tell you these things, because--because, God keep
me, you cannot hear. You did not think I could dream such dreams as
those, did you? You thought I was always thinking of myself and my own
happiness, and of nothing else. You thought I asked everything and
wished to give nothing. But that was before I knew what love is. That
was before you touched me with the magic wand. That was before I
learned that our individual lives are as brief as the sparks that fly
upward, except as we live them through others; and that then--they are
eternal. It was within our grasp, Monte, dear, and we trifled with it
and let it go.
No, not you. It was I who refused the gift. Some day it will come to
you again, through some other. That is what I tell myself over and
over again. I don't think men are like women. They do not give so
much of themselves, and so they may choose from two or three. So in
time, as you wander about, you will find some one who will hold out her
arms, and you will come. She will give you everything she has,--all
honest women do that,--but it will not be all I would have given. You
may think so, and so be happy; but it will not be true. I shall always
know the difference. And you will give her what you have, but it will
not be what you would have given me--what I would have drawn out of
you. I shall always know that. Because, as I love you, heart of me, I
would have found in you treasures that were meant for me alone.
I'm getting wild. I must stop. My head is spinning. Soon it will be
dawn, and I am to ride again with Peter to-morrow. I told you I would
ride every fair day with him, and I am hoping it will rain. But it
will not rain, though to me the sky may be murky. I can see the clouds
scudding before a west wind. It will be clear, and I shall ride with
him as I promised, and I shall kiss him upon his eyes. But if you were
with me--
Here and here and here I throw them out into the dark.
Good-night, soul of my soul.
CHAPTER XXIV
THE BLIND SEE
Day by day Peter's eyes grew stronger, because day by day he was thinking
less about himself and more about Marjory.
"He needs to get away from himself," the doctors had told Beatrice. "If
you can find something that will occupy his thoughts, so that he will
quit thinking about his eyes, you 'll double his chances." Beatrice had
done that when she found Marjory, and now she was more than satisfied
with the result and with herself. Every morning she saw Peter safely
entrusted to Marjory's care, and this left her free the rest of the day
to walk a little, read her favorite books, and nibble chocolates. She
was getting a much-needed rest, secure in the belief that everything was
working out in quite an ideal way.
The only thing that seemed to her at all strange was a sudden reluctance
on Peter's part to talk to her of Marjory. At the end of the day the
three had dinner together at the Hotel d'Angleterre,--Marjory could never
be persuaded to dine at the Roses,--and when by eight Peter and his
sister returned to their own hotel, he gave her only the barest details
of his excursion, and retired early to his room. But he seemed cheerful
enough, so that, after all, this might be only another favorable symptom
of his progress. Peter always had been more or less secretive, and until
his illness neither she nor his parents knew more than an outline of his
life in New York. Periodically they came on to visit him for a few days,
and periodically he went home for a few days. He was making a name for
himself, and they were very proud of him, and the details did not matter.
Knowing Peter as they did, it was easy enough to fill them in.
Even with Marjory, Peter talked less and less about himself. From his
own ambitions, hopes, and dreams he turned more and more to hers. Now
that he had succeeded in making her a prisoner, however slender the
thread by which he held her, he seemed intent upon filling in all the
past as fully as possible. Up to a certain point that was easy enough.
She was willing to talk of her girlhood; of her father, whom she adored;
and even of Aunt Kitty, who had claimed her young womanhood. She was
even eager. It afforded her a safe topic in which she found relief. It
gave her an opportunity also to justify, in a fashion, or at least to
explain, both to herself and Peter, the frame of mind that led her up to
later events.
"I ran away from you, Peter," she admitted.
"I know," he answered.
"Only it was not so much from you as from what you stood for," she
hurried on. "I was thinking of myself alone, and of the present alone.
I had been a prisoner so long, I wanted to be free a little."
"Free?" he broke in quickly, with a frown. "I don't like to hear you use
that word. That's the way Covington's wife talked, is n't it?"
"Yes," she murmured.
"It's the way so many women are talking to-day--and so many men, too.
Freedom is such a big word that a lot of people seem to think it will
cloak anything they care to do. They lose sight of the fact that the
freer a man or a woman is, the more responsibility he assumes. The free
are put upon their honor to fulfill the obligations that are exacted by
force from the irresponsible. So those who abuse this privilege are
doubly treacherous--treacherous to themselves, and treacherous to
society, which trusted them."
Marjory turned aside her head, so that he might not even look upon her
with his blind eyes.
"I--I didn't mean any harm, Peter," she said.
"Of course you did n't. I don't suppose Mrs. Covington did, either; did
she?"
"No, Peter, I'm sure she didn't. She--she was selfish."
"Besides, if you only come through safe, and learn--"
"At least, I've learned," she answered.
"Since you went away from me?"
"Yes."
"You have n't told me very much about that."
She caught her breath.
"Is--is it dishonest to keep to one's self how one learns?" she asked.
"No, little woman; only, I feel as though I'd like to know you as I know
myself. I'd like to feel that there was n't a nook or cranny in your
mind that was n't open to me."
"Peter!"
"Is that asking too much?"
"Some day you must know, but not now."
"If Mrs. Covington--"
"Must we talk any more about her?" she exclaimed.
"I did n't know it hurt you."
"It does--more than you realize."
"I'm sorry," he said quickly.
He fumbled about for her hand. She allowed him to take it.
"Have you heard from Covington since he left?"
He felt her fingers twitch.
"Does it hurt, too, to talk about him?" he asked.
"It's impossible to talk about Monte without talking about
his--his--about Mrs. Covington," Marjory explained feebly.
"They ought to be one," he admitted. "But you said they are about to
separate."
"Yes, Peter; only I keep thinking of what ought to be."
She withdrew her hand and leaned back on the seat a little away from him.
Sensitive to every movement of hers, he glanced up at this.
"Somehow,"--he said, with a strained expression,--"somehow I feel the
need of seeing your eyes to-day. There's something I 'm missing.
There's something here I don't understand."
"Don't try to understand, Peter," she cried. "It's better that you
should n't."
"It's best always to know the truth," he said.
"Not always."
"Always," he insisted.
"Sometimes it does n't do any good to know the truth. It only hurts."
"Even then, it's best. When I get my eyes--"
She shrank farther away from him, for she saw him struggling even then to
open them.
It was this possibility which from that point on added a new terror to
these daily drives. Marjory had told Monte that Peter's recovery was
something to which she looked forward; but when she said that she had
been sitting alone and pouring out her heart to Monte. She had not then
been facing this fact by the side of Peter. It was one thing to dream
boldly, with all her thoughts of Monte, and quite another to confront the
same facts actually and alone. If this crisis came now, it was going to
hurt her and hurt Peter, and do no good to any one; while, if it could be
postponed six months, perhaps it would not hurt so much. It was better
for Peter to endure his blindness a little longer than to see too soon.
So the next day she decided she would not kiss his eyes. He came to her
in the morning, and stood before her, waiting. She placed her hand upon
his shoulder.
"Peter," she said as gently as she could, "I do not think I shall kiss
you again for a little while."
She saw his lips tighten; but, to her surprise, he made no protest.
"No, dear heart," he answered.
"It is n't because I wish to be unkind," she said. "Only, until you know
the whole truth, I don't feel honest with you."
"Come over by the window and sit down in the light," he requested.
With a start she glanced nervously at his eyes. They were closed. She
took a chair in the sun, and he sat down opposite her.
For a moment they sat so, in silence. With her chin in her hand, she
stared out across the blue waters of the Mediterranean, across the quay
where Monte used to walk. It looked so desolate out there without him!
How many hours since he left she had watched people pass back and forth
along the broad path, as if hoping against hope that by some chance he
might suddenly appear among them. But he never did, and she knew that
she might sit here watching year after year and he would not come.
By this time he was probably in England--probably, on such a day as this,
out upon the links. She smiled a little. "Damn golf!" he had said.
She thought for a moment that she heard his voice repeating it. It was
only Peter's voice.
"You have grown even more beautiful than I thought," Peter was saying.
She sprang to her feet. He was looking at he--shading his opened eyes
with one hand.
"Peter!" she cried, falling back a step.
[Illustration: "Peter!" she cried, falling back a step.]
"More beautiful," he repeated. "But your eyes are sadder."
"Peter," she said again, "your eyes are open!"
"Yes," he said. "It became necessary for me to see--so they opened."
Before them, she felt ashamed--almost like one naked. She began to
tremble. Then, with her cheeks scarlet, she covered her face with her
hands.
Peter rose and helped her back to a chair as if she, in her turn, had
suddenly become blind.
"If I frighten you like this I--I must not look at you," he faltered.
Still she trembled; still she covered her face.
"See!" he cried. "I have closed them again."
She looked up in amazement. He was standing with his eyes tight shut.
He who had been in darkness all these long months had dared, to save her
from her own shame, to return again to the pit. For a second it stopped
her heart from beating. Then, springing to his side, she seized his
hands.
"Peter," she commanded, "open your eyes!"
He was pale--ghastly pale.
"Not if it hurts you."
Swiftly leaning toward him, she kissed the closed lids.
"Will you open them--now?"
She was in terror lest he should find it impossible again--as if that had
been some temporary miracle which, having been scorned, would not be
repeated.
Then once again she saw his eyes flutter open. This time she faced them
with her fists clenched by her side. What a difference those eyes made
in him. Closed, he was like a helpless child; open, he was a man. He
grew taller, bigger, older, while she who had been leading him about
shrank into insignificance. She felt pettier, plainer, less worthy than
ever she had in her life. By sheer force of will power she held up her
head and faced him as if she were facing the sun.
For a moment he feasted upon her hungrily. To see her hair, when for
months he had been forced to content himself with memories of it; to see
her white forehead, her big, deep eyes and straight nose; to see the lips
which he had only felt--all that held him silent. But he saw something
else there, too. In physical detail this face was the same that he had
seen before he was stricken. But something had been added. Before she
had the features of a girl; now she had the features of a woman.
Something had since been added to the eyes and mouth--something he knew
nothing about.
"Marjory," he said slowly, "I think there is a great deal you have left
untold."
She tightened her lips. There was no further use of evasion. If he
pressed her with his eyes open, he must know the truth.
"Yes, Peter," she answered.
"I can't decide," he went on slowly, "whether it has to do with a great
grief or a great joy."
"The two so often come together," she trembled.
"Yes," he nodded; "I think that is true. Perhaps they belong together."
"I have only just learned that," she said.
"And you've been left with the grief?"
"I can't tell, Peter. Sometimes I think so, and then again I see the
justice of it, and it seems beautiful. All I 'm sure of is that I 'm
left alone."
"Even with me?"
"Even with you, Peter."
He passed his hand over his eyes.
"This other--do I know him?" he asked finally.
"Yes."
"It--it is Covington?"
"Yes."
She spoke almost mechanically.
"I--I should have guessed it before. Had I been able to see, I should
have known."
"That is why I did n't wish you to see me--so soon," Marjory said.
"Covington!" he repeated. "But what of the other woman?"
She took a long breath.
"I--I'm the other woman," she answered.
"Marjory!" he cried. "Not she you told me of?"
"Yes."
"His wife!"
"No--not that. Merely Mrs. Covington."
"I don't understand. You don't mean you're not his wife!" He checked
himself abruptly.
"We were married in Paris," she hastened to explain. "But--but we agreed
the marriage was to be only a form. He was to come down here with me as
a _compagnon de voyage_. He wished only to give me the protection of his
name, and that--that was all I wished. It was not until I met you,
Peter, that I realized what I had done."
"It was not until then you realized that you really loved him?"
"Not until then," she moaned.
"But, knowing that, you allowed me to talk as I did; to hope--"
"Peter--dear Peter!" she broke in. "It was not then. It was only after
I knew he had gone out of my life forever that I allowed that. You see,
he has gone. He has gone to England, and from there he is going home.
You know what he is going for. He is never coming back. So it is as if
he died, isn't it? I allowed you to talk because I knew you were telling
the truth. And I did not promise much. When you asked me never to go
from you, all I said was that I 'd try. You remember that? And I have
tried, and I was going to keep on trying--ever so hard. I had ruined my
own life and his life, and--and I did n't want to hurt you any more. I
wanted to do what I could to undo some of the harm I'd already done. I
thought that perhaps if we went on like this long enough, I might forget
a little of the past and look forward only to the future. Some day I
meant to tell you. You know that, Peter. You know I would n't be
dishonest with you." She was talking hysterically, anxious only to
relieve the tenseness of his lips. She was not sure that he heard her at
all. He was looking at her, but with curious detachment, as if he were
at a play.
"Peter--say something!" she begged.
"It's extraordinary that I should ever have dared hope you were for me,"
he said.
"You mean you--you don't want me, Peter?"
"Want you?" he cried hoarsely. "I'd go through hell to get you. I'd
stay mole-blind the rest of my life to get you! Want you?"
He stepped toward her with his hands outstretched as if to seize her. In
spite of herself, she shrank away.
"You see," he ran on. "What difference does it make if I want you? You
belong to another. You belong to Covington. You have n't anything to do
with yourself any more. You have n't yourself to give. You're his."
With her hand above her eyes as if to ward off his blows, she gasped:--
"You must n't say such things, Peter."
"I'm only telling the truth, and there's no harm in that. I 'm telling
you what you have n't dared tell yourself."
"Things I mustn't tell myself!" she cried. "Things I must n't hear."
"What I don't understand," he said, "is why Covington did n't tell you
all this himself. He must have known."
"He knew nothing," she broke in. "I was a mere incident in his life. We
met in Paris quite by accident when he happened to have an idle week. He
was alone and I was alone, and he saved me from a disagreeable situation.
Then, because he still had nothing in particular to do and I had nothing
in particular to do, he suggested this further arrangement. We were each
considering nothing but our own comfort. We wanted nothing more. It was
to escape just such complications as this--to escape responsibility, as I
told you--that we--we married. He was only a boy, Peter, and knew no
better. But I was a woman, and should have known. And I came to know!
That was my punishment."
"He came to know, too," said Peter.
"He might have come to know," she corrected breathlessly. "There were
moments when I dared think so. If I had kept myself true--oh, Peter,
these are terrible things to say!"
She buried her face in her hands again--a picture of total and abject
misery. Her frame shook with sobs that she was fighting hard to suppress.
Peter placed his hand gently upon her shoulder.
"There, little woman," he tried to comfort. "Cry a minute. It will do
you good."
"I have n't even the right to cry," she sobbed.
"You _must_ cry," he said. "You have n't let yourself go enough. That's
been the whole trouble."
He was silent a moment, patting her back, with his eyes leveled out of
the window as if trying to look beyond the horizon, beyond that to the
secret places of eternity.
"You have n't let yourself go enough," he repeated, almost like a seer.
"You have tried to force your destiny from its appointed course. You
have, and Covington has, and I have. We have tried to force things that
were not meant to be and to balk things that were meant to be. That's
because we've been selfish--all three of us. We've each thought of
ourself alone--of our own petty little happiness of the moment. That's
deadly. It warps the vision. It--it makes people stone-blind.
"I understand now. When you went away from me, it was myself alone I
considered. I was hurt and worried, and made a martyr of myself. If I
had thought more of you, all would have been well. This time I think
I--I have thought a little more of you. It was to get at you and not
myself that I wanted to see again. So I saw again. I let go of myself
and reached out for you. So now--why, everything is quite clear."
She raised her head.
"Clear, Peter?"
"Quite clear. I'm to go back to my work, and to use my eyes less and my
head and heart more. I 'm to deal less with statutes and more with
people. Instead of quoting precedents, perhaps I 'm going to try to
establish precedents. There's work enough to be done, God knows, of a
sort that is born of just such a year as this I 've lived through. I
must let go of myself and let myself go. I must think less of my own
ambitions and more of the ambitions of others. So I shall live in
others. Perhaps I may even be able to live a little through you two."
"Peter!" she cried.
"For Covington must come back to you as fast as ever he can."
"No! No! No!"
"You don't understand how much he loves his wife."
"Please!"
"And, he, poor devil, does n't understand how much his wife loves him."
"You--you"--she trembled aghast--"you would n't dare repeat what I've
told you!"
"You don't want to stagger on in the dark any longer. You'll let me tell
him."
She rose to her feet, her face white.
"Peter," she said slowly, "if ever you told him that, I'd never forgive
you. If ever you told him, I 'd deny it. You 'd only force me into more
lies. You'd only crush me lower."
"Steady, Marjory," he said.
"You're wonderful, Peter!" she exclaimed. "You 've--you 've been seeing
visions. But when you speak of telling him what I've told you, you don't
understand how terrible that would be. Peter--you'll promise me you
won't do that?"
She was pleading, with panic in her eyes.
"Yet, if he knew, he'd come racing to you."
"He'd do that because he's a gentleman and four-square. He'd come to me
and pretend. He'd feel himself at fault, and pity me. Do you know how
it hurts a woman to be pitied? I'd rather he'd hate me. I'd rather he'd
forget me altogether.",
"But what of the talks I had with him in the dark?" he questioned. "When
he talked to me of you then, it was not in pity."
"Because,"--she choked,--"because he does n't know himself as I know him.
He--he does n't like changes--dear Monte. It disturbed him to go because
it would have been so much easier to have stayed. So, for the moment, he
may have been--a bit sentimental."
"You don't think as little of him as that!" he cried.
"He--he is the man who married me," she answered unsteadily. "It
was--just Monte who married me--honest, easy-going, care-free Monte, who
is willing to do a woman a favor even to the extent of marrying her. He
is very honest and very gallant and very normal. He likes one day to be
as another. He does n't wish to be stirred up. He asked me this, Peter:
'Is n't it possible to care without caring too much?' And I said, 'Yes.'
That was why he married me. He had seen others who cared a great deal,
and they frightened him. They cared so much that they made themselves
uncomfortable, and he feared that."
"Good Lord, you call that man Covington?" exclaimed Peter.
"No--just Monte," Marjory answered quickly. "It's just the outside of
him. The man you call Covington--the man inside--is another man."
"It's the real man," declared Peter.
"Yes," she nodded, with a catch in her voice. "That's the real man.
But--don't you understand?--it was n't that man who married me. It was
Monte who married me to escape Covington. He trusted me not to disturb
the real man, just as I trusted him not to disturb the real me."
Peter leaned forward with a new hope in his eyes.
"Then," he said, "perhaps, after all, he did n't get to the real you."
Quite simply she replied:--
"He did, Peter. He does not know it, but he did."
"You are sure?"
She knew the pain she was causing him, but she answered:--
"Yes. I could n't admit that to any one else in the world but you--and
it hurts you, Peter."
"It hurts like the devil," he said.
She placed her hand upon his.
"Poor Peter," she said gently.
"It hurts like the devil, but it's nothing for you to pity me for," he
put in quickly. "I'd rather have the hurt from you than nothing."
"You feel like that?" she asked earnestly.
"Yes."
"Then," she said, "you must understand how, even with me, the joy and the
grief are one?"
"Yes, I understand that. Only if he knew--"
"He'd come back to me, you're going to say again. And I tell you again,
I won't have him come back, kind and gentle and smiling. If he came back
now,--if it were possible for him really to come to me,--I 'd want him to
ache with love. I 'd want him to be hurt with love."
She was talking fiercely, with a wild, unrestrained passion such as Peter
had never seen in any woman.
"I 'd want," she hurried on, out of all control of herself--"I'd want
everything I don't want him to give--everything I 've no right to ask. I
'd want him to live on tiptoe from one morning through to the next. I'd
begrudge him every minute he was just comfortable. I'd want him always
eager, always worried, because I 'd be always looking for him to do great
things. I 'd have him always ready for great sacrifices--not for me
alone, but for himself. I 'd be so proud of him I think I--I could with
a smile see him sacrifice even his life for another. For I should know
that, after a little waiting, I should meet him again, a finer and nobler
man. And all those things I asked of him I should want to do for him. I
'd like to lay down my life for him."
She stopped as abruptly as she had begun, staring about like some one
suddenly awakened to find herself in a strange country. It was Peter's
voice that brought her back again to the empty room.
"How you do love him!" he said solemnly.
"Peter," she cried, "you shouldn't have listened!"
She shrank back toward the door.
"And I--I thought just kisses on the eyes stood for love," he added.
"You must forget all I said," she moaned. "I was mad--for a moment!"
"You were wonderful," he told her.
She was still backing toward the door.
"I'm going off to hide," she said piteously.
"Not that," he called after her.
But the door closed in front of her. The door closed in front of him.
With his lips clenched, Peter Noyes walked back to the Hotel des Roses.
CHAPTER XXV
SO LONG
When Peter stepped into his sister's room he had forgotten that his
eyes were open.
"Beatrice," he said, "we must start back for New York as soon as
possible."
She sprang from her chair. Pale and without his shade, he was like an
apparition.
"Peter!" she cried.
"What's the trouble?"
"Your eyes!"
"They came back this morning."
"Then I was right! Marjory--Marjory worked the miracle!"
He smiled a little.
"Yes."
"It's wonderful. But, Peter--"
"Well?"
"You look so strange--so pale!"
"It's been--well, rather an exciting experience."
She put her arms about his neck and kissed him.
"You should have brought the miracle-worker with you," she smiled.
"And instead of that I'm leaving her."
"Leaving Marjory--after this?"
"Sit down, little sister," he begged. "A great deal has happened this
morning--a great deal that I'm afraid it's going to be hard for you to
understand. It was hard for me to understand at first; and yet, after
all, it's merely a question of fact. It is n't anything that leaves
any chance for speculation. It just is, that's all. You see,
you--both of us--made an extraordinary mistake. We--we assumed that
Marjory was free."
"Free? Of course she's free!" exclaimed Beatrice.
"Only she's not," Peter informed her. "As a matter of fact, she's
married."
"Marjory--married!"
"To Covington. She's Covington's wife. They were married a few weeks
ago in Paris. You understand? She's Covington's wife." His voice
rose a trifle.
"Peter--you 're sure of that?"
"She told me so herself--less than an hour ago."
"That's impossible. Why, she listened to me when--"
"When what?" he cut in.
Frightened, she clasped her hands beneath her chin.
His eyes demanded a reply.
"I--I told her what the doctors told me. Don't look at me so, Peter!"
"You tried to win her sympathy for me?"
"They told me if you stopped worrying, your sight would come back. I
told her that, Peter."
"You told her more?"
"That if she could love you--oh, I could n't help it!"
"So that is why she listened to you; why she listened to me. You
begged for her pity, and--she gave it. I thought at least I could
leave her with my head up."
Beatrice began to sob.
"I--I did the best I knew how," she pleaded.
His head was bowed. He looked crushed. Throwing herself upon her
knees in front of him, Beatrice reached for his clasped hands.
"I did the best I knew!" she moaned.
"Yes," he answered dully; "you did that. Every one has done that.
Only--nothing should have been done at all. Nothing can ever be done."
"You--you forgive me, Peter?"
"Yes."
But his voice was dead. It had no meaning.
"It may all be for the best," she ran on, anxious to revive him.
"We'll go back to New York, Peter--you and I. Perhaps you'll let me
stay with you there. We'll get a little apartment together, so that I
can care for you. I 'll do that all the days of my life, if you 'll
let me."
"I want a better fate than that for you, little sister," he answered.
Rising, he helped her to her feet. He smoothed back her hair from her
forehead and kissed her there.
"It won't do to look ahead very far, or backwards either just now," he
said. "But if I can believe there is something still left in life for
me, I must believe there is a great deal more left for you. Only we
must get away from here as soon as possible."
"You have your eyes, Peter," she exclaimed exultingly. "She can't take
those away from you again!"
"Hush," he warned. "You must never blame her for anything."
"You mean you still--"
"Still and forever, little sister," he answered. "But we must not talk
of that."
"Poor Peter," she trembled.
"Rich Peter!" he corrected, with a wan smile. "There are so many who
have n't as much as that."
He went back to his room. The next thing to do was to write some sort
of explanation to Covington. His ears burned as he thought of the
other letter he had sent. How it must have bored into the man! How it
must have hurt! He had been forced to read the confession of love of
another man for his wife. The wonder was that he had not taken the
next train back and knocked down the writer. It must be that he
understood the hopelessness of such a passion. Perhaps he had smiled!
Only that was not like Covington. Rather, he had gripped his jaws and
stood it.
But if it had hurt and he hankered for revenge, he was to have it now.
He, Noyes, had bared his soul to the husband and confessed a love that
now he must stand up and recant. That was punishment enough for any
man. He must do that, too, without violating any of Marjory's
confidences--without helping in any way to disentangle the pitiful
snarl that it was within his power to disentangle. She whose happiness
might partly have recompensed him for what he had to do, he must still
leave unhappy. As far as he himself was concerned, however, he was
entitled to tell the truth. He could not recant his love. That would
be false. But he had no right to it--that was what he must make
Covington understand.
_Dear Covington_ [he began]: I am writing this with my eyes open. The
miracle I spoke of came to pass. Also a great many other things have
come to pass. You'll realize how hard it is to write about them after
that other letter, when I tell you I have learned the truth: that
Marjory is Mrs. Covington. She told me herself, when our relations
reached a crisis where she had to tell.
I feel, naturally, as if I owed you some sort of apology; and yet, when
I come to frame it, I find myself baffled. Of course I'm leaving for
home as soon as possible--probably to-morrow. Of course if I had known
the truth I should have left long ago, and that letter would never have
had any occasion for being written. I'm assuming, Covington, that you
will believe that without any question. You knew what I did not know
and did not tell me even after you knew how I felt. I suppose you felt
so confident of her that you trusted her absolutely to handle an affair
of this sort herself.
I want to say right here, you were justified. Whatever in that other
letter I may have said to lead you to believe she had come to care for
me in the slightest was a result solely of my own self-delusion and her
innate gentleness. I have discovered that my sister, meaning no harm,
went to her and told her that the restoration of my sight depended upon
her interest in me. It was manifestly unfair of my sister to put it
that way, but the little woman was thinking only of me. I'm sorry it
was done. Evidently it was the basis upon which she made the feeble
promise I spoke of, and which I exaggerated into something more.
She cared for me no more than for a friend temporarily afflicted.
That's all, Covington. Neither in word nor thought nor deed has she
ever gone any further. Looking back upon the last few days now, it is
clear enough. Rather than hurt me, she allowed me to talk--allowed me
to believe. Rather, she suffered it. It was not pleasant for her.
She endured it because of what my sister had said. It seems hard luck
that I should have been led in this fashion to add to whatever other
burdens she may have had.
I ask you to believe--it would be an impertinence, except for what I
told you before--that on her side there has been nothing between us of
which you could not approve.
Now for myself. In the light of what I know to-day, I could not have
written you of her as I did. Yet, had I remained silent, all I said
would have remained just as much God's truth as then. Though I must
admit the utter hopelessness of my love, I see no reason why I should
think of attempting to deny that love. It would n't be decent to
myself, to you, or to her. It began before you came into her life at
all. It has grown bigger and cleaner since then. It persists to-day.
I'm talking to you as man to man, Covington. I know you won't confuse
that statement with any desire on my part--with any hope, however
remote--to see that love fulfilled further than it is fulfilled to-day.
That delusion has vanished forever. I shall never entertain it again,
no matter what course your destiny or her destiny may take. I cannot
make that emphatic enough, Covington. It is based upon a certain
knowledge of facts which, unfortunately, I am not at liberty to reveal
to you.
So, as far as my own emotions are concerned then, I retract nothing of
what I told you. In fact, to-day I could say more. To me she is and
ever will be the most wonderful woman who ever lived. Thinking of you
before, I said there ought to be two of her, so that one might be left
for you. Now, thinking of myself, I would to God there were two of
her, so that one might be left for me. Yet that is inconceivable. It
might be possible to find another who looked like her; who thought like
her; who was willing for the big things of life like her. But this
other would not be Marjory. Besides everything else she has in common
with other women, she has something all her own that makes her herself.
It's that something that has got hold of me, Covington.
I don't suppose it's in particularly good taste for me to talk to you
of your wife in this fashion; but it's my dying speech, old man, as far
as this subject is concerned, and I 'm talking to you and to no one
else.
There's just one thing more I want to say. I don't want either you or
Marjory to think I'm going out of your lives a martyr--that I'm going
off to pine and die. The first time she left me I made an ass of
myself, and that was because I had not then got hold of the essential
fact of love. As I see it now, love--real love--does not lie in the
personal gratification of selfish desires. The wanting is only the
first stage. Perhaps it is a ruse of Nature to entice men to the
second stage, which is giving.
Until recently my whole thought was centered on getting. I was
thinking of myself alone. It was baffled desire and injured vanity
that led me to do what I did before, and I was justly punished. It was
when I began to think less about myself and more about her that I was
reprieved. I'm leaving her now with but one desire: to do for her
whatever I may, at any time and in any place, to make her happy; and,
because of her, to do the same for any others with whom for the rest of
my life I may be thrown in contact. Thus I may be of some use and find
peace.
I'm going away, Covington. That will leave her here alone. Wherever
you are, there must be trains back to Nice--starting perhaps within the
hour.
So long.
PETER J. NOYES.
CHAPTER XXVI
FREEDOM
With the departure of Peter and his sister--Peter had made his
leave-taking easy by securing an earlier train than she had expected
and sending her a brief note of farewell--Marjory found herself near
that ideal state of perfect freedom she had craved. There was now no
outside influence to check her movements. If she remained where she
was, there was no one to interrupt her in the solitary pursuit of her
own pleasure. Safe from any possibility of intrusion, she was at
liberty to remain in the seclusion of her room; but, if she preferred,
she could walk the quay without the slightest prospect in the world of
being forced to recognize the friendly greeting of any one.
Peter was gone; Beatrice was gone; and Monte was gone. There was no
one else--unless by some chance poor Teddy Hamilton should turn up,
which was so unlikely that she did not even consider it. Yet there
were moments when, if she had met Teddy, she would have smiled a
welcome. She would not have feared him. There was only one person in
the world now of whom she stood in fear, and he was somewhere along the
English coast, playing a poor game of golf.
She was free beyond her most extravagant dreams--absolutely free. She
was so free that it seemed aimless to rise in the morning, because
there was nothing awaiting her attention. She was so free that there
was no object in breakfasting, because there was no obligation
demanding her strength. She was so free that whether she should go out
or remain indoors depended merely upon the whim of the moment. There
was for her nothing either without or within.
For the first twenty-four hours she sat in a sort of stupor.
Marie became anxious.
"Madame is not well?" she asked solicitously.
"Perfectly well," answered Marjory dully.
"Madame's cheeks are very white," Marie ventured further.
Madame shrugged her shoulders.
"Is there any harm in that?" she demanded.
"It is such a beautiful day to walk," suggested Marie.
Marjory turned slowly.
"What do you mean by beautiful?"
"Ma foi, the sky is blue, the sun is shining, the birds singing,"
explained Marie.
"Do those things make a beautiful day?"
"What else, madame?" inquired the maid, in astonishment.
"I do not know," sighed madame. "All I know is that for me those
things do not count at all."
"Then," declared Marie, "it is time to call a doctor."
"For what?"
"To make madame see the blue sky again and hear the birds."
"But I do not care whether I see them or not," concluded madame,
turning away from the subject.
Here was the whole thing in a nutshell. There were some who might
consider this to be an ideal state. Not to care about anything at all
was not to have anything at all to worry about. Certain philosophies
were based upon this state of mind. In part, Monte's own philosophy
was so based. If not to care too much were well, then not to care at
all should be better. It should leave one utterly and sublimely free.
But should it also leave one utterly miserable?
There was something inconsistent in that--something unfair. To be
free, and yet to feel like a prisoner bound and gagged; not to care,
and yet to feel one's vitals eaten with caring; to obtain one's
objective, and then to be marooned there like a forsaken sailor on a
desert island--this was unjust.
Ah, but she did care! It was as if some portion of her refused
absolutely to obey her will in this matter. In silence she might
declare her determination not to care, or through tense lips she might
mutter the same thing in spoken words; but this made no difference.
She was a free agent, to be sure. She had the right to dictate terms
to herself. She had the sole right to be arbiter of her destiny. It
was to that end she had craved freedom. It was for her alone to decide
about what she should care and should not care. She was no longer a
schoolgirl to be controlled by others. She was both judge and jury for
herself, and she had passed sentence to the effect that, since she had
chosen not to care when to care had been her privilege, it was no
longer her privilege to care when she chose to care. Nothing since
then had developed to give her the right to alter that verdict. If
anything, it held truer after Peter's departure than ever. She must
add to her indictment the harm she had done him.
Still, she cared. Staring out of her window upon the quay, she caught
her breath at sight of every new passer-by, in fearful hope that it
might prove to be Monte. She did this when she knew that Monte was
hundreds of miles away. She did this in face of the fact that, if his
coming depended upon her consent, she would have withheld that consent.
If in truth he had suddenly appeared, she would have fled in terror.
He must not come; he should not come--but, O God, if he would come!
[Illustration: "But, O God, if he would come!"]
Sometimes this thought held her for a moment before she realized it.
Then for a space the sun appeared in the blue sky and the birds set up
such a singing as Marie had never heard in all her life. Perhaps for a
step or two she saw him striding toward her with his face aglow, his
clear, blue eyes smiling, his tender man mouth open to greet her. So
her heart leaped to her throat and her arms trembled. Then--the fall
into the abyss as she caught herself. Then her head drooping upon her
arm and the racking, dry sobs.
How she did care! It was as if everything she had ever hungered for in
the past--all her beautiful, timid girlhood dreams; all that good part
of her later hunger for freedom; all of to-day and all that was worth
while of the days to come, had been gathered together, like jewels in a
single jewel casket, and handed over to him. He had them all. None
had been left her. She had none left.
She had always known that if ever she loved it was so that she must
love. It was this that she had feared. She had known that if she gave
at all she must give utterly--all that she ever had or hoped to have.
Suddenly she recalled Mrs. Chic. It was with a new emotion. The
latter had always been to her the symbol of complete self-sacrifice.
It centered around the night Chic, Junior was born. That night she had
been paler than Mrs. Chic herself; she had whimpered more than Mrs.
Chic. Outside, waiting, she had feared more than the wife within who
was wrestling with death for a new life. She had sat alone, with her
hands over her ears in an agony of fear and horror. She had marveled
that any woman would consent to face such a crisis. It had seemed
wrong that love--an affair of orange blossoms and music and
laughter--should lead to that. Wide-eyed, she had sobbed in terror
until it was over. It was with awe and wonder that a few days later
she had seen Mrs. Chic lying in her big white bed so crooningly happy
and jubilant.
Now she understood. The fear and horror had vanished. Had she been in
the next room to-day, her heart would have leaped with joy in tune with
her who was fighting her grim fight. Because the aches and the pains
are but an incident of preparation. Not only that, but one can so love
that pain, physical pain, may in the end be the only means for an
adequate expression of that love. The two may be one, so blended as to
lead, in the end, to perfect joy. Even mental pains, such as she
herself now suffered, can do that. For all she was undergoing she
would not have given up one second to be back again where she was a
month before.
Something comes with love. It is that more than love itself which is
the greatest thing in the world. Sitting by her window, watching the
shadows pass, Marjory was sensing this. The knowledge was coming
slowly, imperceptibly; but it was bringing her strength. It was
steadying her nerves. It was preparing her for the supreme test.
Because that very day, toward sunset-time, as she still sat by her
window, she saw a shadow that looked like Monte. She smiled a little,
because she knew it would soon dissolve. Rapidly the shadow strode
along the quay until opposite the hotel. Then, instead of vanishing,
it came on--straight toward her. She sprang to her feet, leaning back
against the wall, not daring to look again. So she stood, counting her
heart-beats; for she was still certain that when a hundred or so of
them had passed, the illusion also would fade.
Marjory did not have time to count a full hundred heart-beats before
she heard a light rap at the door. For the fraction of a second she
swayed in the fear that, taking the stairs three at a time, Monte might
have ventured to her very room. But it would be with no such gentle
tap that he would announce himself.
"Yes?" she called.
"A card for madame," came the voice of the garcon.
Her knees still weak, she crossed the room and took the card. There
was no longer any hope left to her. Apparitions do not materialize to
the point where they present their cards.
"Madame is in?" queried the boy.
"What else can I say?" she asked, as if, in her desperate need, seeking
counsel of him.
The boy shrugged his shoulders.
"If madame desires, I can report madame is away," he offered.
It was all one to him. It was all one to every one else in the world
but herself. No one was interested. She was alone. Then why had not
Monte himself let her alone? That was the point, but to determine that
it was necessary to see him.
It was possible he had come merely by chance. It was possible he had
come to see Peter, not knowing that Peter had gone. It was possible he
had returned this way in order to take the Mediterranean route home.
On the face of it, anything was more probable than that he had come
deliberately to see her.
"You will ask monsieur to wait, and I will be down in a few moments,"
she replied to the boy.
She called to Marie.
"I have a caller," she announced nervously. "You must make me look as
young as possible."
Even if she had grown old inside, there was no reason why she should
reveal her secret.
"I am glad," nodded Marie. "Madame should put on a white gown and wear
a ribbon in her hair."
"A ribbon!" exclaimed madame. "That would look absurd."
"You shall see."
She was too weak to protest. She was glad enough to sit down and give
herself up utterly to Marie.
"Only we must not keep him waiting too long," she said. "Monsieur
Covington does not like to be kept waiting."
"It is he?" exclaimed Marie.
"It--it is quite a surprise." She blushed. "I--I do not understand
why he is here."
"It should not be difficult to understand," ventured Marie.
To that madame made no reply. It was clear enough what Marie meant.
It was a natural enough mistake. To her, Monsieur Covington was still
the husband of madame. She had stood in the little chapel in Paris
when madame was married. When one was married, one was married; and
that was all there was to it for all time. So, doubtless, Marie
reasoned. It was the simple peasant way--the old, honest, woman way.
Madame folded her hands in her lap and closed her eyes while Marie did
her hair and adjusted the ribbon. Then Marie slipped a white gown over
her head.
"There," concluded the maid, with satisfaction, as she fastened the
last hook. "Madame looks as young as when she was married."
But the color that made her look young vanished the moment Marjory
started down the stairs alone to meet him. Several times she paused to
catch her breath; several times she was upon the point of turning back.
Then she saw him coming up to meet her. She felt her hand in his.
"Jove!" he was saying, "but it's good to see you again."
"But I don't understand why you are here," she managed to gasp.
To him it was evidently as simple as to Marie.
"To see you," he answered promptly.
"If that is all, then you should not have come," she declared.
They were still on the stairs. She led the way down and into the lower
reception-room. She did not care to go again into the sun parlor. She
thought it would be easier to talk to him in surroundings not
associated with anything in the past. They had the room to themselves.
She sat down and motioned him to another chair at some little distance.
He paid no attention to her implied request. With his feet planted
firmly, his arms folded, he stood before her while she tried to find
some way of avoiding his gaze.
"Peter Noyes has gone," he began.
"Yes," she nodded. "You heard about his eyes?"
"He wrote me."
She looked up swiftly.
"Peter wrote you?" she trembled.
"He told me he had recovered his sight. He told me he was going."
What else had he told? Dizzily she waited. For the first time in her
life, she felt as if she might faint. That would be such a silly thing
to do!
"He said he was going home--out of your life."
Peter had told Monte that! What else had he told?
He paused a moment, as if expecting her to make some reply. There, was
nothing she could say.
"It was n't what I expected," he went on.
What else had Peter told him?
"Was n't there any other way?" he asked.
"I did n't send him home. He--he chose to go," she said.
"Because it was n't any use for him to remain?"
"I told him the truth," she nodded.
"And he took it like a man!" exclaimed Monte enthusiastically. "I 'd
like to show you his letter, only I don't know that it would be quite
fair to him."
"I don't want to see it," she cut in. "I--I know I should n't."
What else besides his going had Peter told Monte?
"It was his letter that brought me back," he said.
She held her breath. She had warned Peter that if he as much as hinted
at anything that she had confessed to him, she would lie to Monte. So
she should--but God forbid that this added humiliation be brought upon
her.
"You see, when I went I expected that he would be left to care for you.
With him and his sister here, I knew you would n't be alone. I thought
they'd stay, or if they went--you'd go with them."
"But why should n't I be alone?" she gathered strength to ask.
"Because," he answered quickly, "it is n't good for you. It is n't
good for any one. Besides, it is n't right. When we were married I
made certain promises, and those hold good until we're unmarried."
"Monte!" she cried.
"As long as Peter was around, that was one thing; now that he's gone--"
"It throws me back on your hands," she interrupted, in an attempt to
assert herself. "Please to sit down. You're making your old mistake
of trying to be serious. There's not the slightest reason in the world
why you should bother about me like this."
She ventured to look at him again. His brows were drawn together in a
puzzled frown. Dear Monte--it was cruel of her to confuse him like
this, when he was trying to see straight. He looked so very woe-begone
when he looked troubled at all.
"It--it is n't any bother," he stammered.
"I should think it was a good deal," she answered, feeling for a moment
that she had the upper hand. "Where did you come from to here?"
"Paris."
"You did n't go on to England at all?"
"No."
"Then you did n't get back to your schedule. If you had done that, you
would n't have had any time left to--to think about other things."
"I did n't get beyond the Normandie," he answered. "My schedule
stopped short right there."
He was still standing before her. Apparently he intended to remain.
So she rose and crossed to another chair. He followed.
"You should have gone on," she insisted.
"I had my old room--next to yours," he said.
She must trouble him still more. There was no other way.
"That was rather sentimental of you, Monte, was n't it?" she asked
lightly.
"I went there as a man goes home," he answered softly.
Her lips became suddenly dumb.
"Then I had a long letter from Peter; the first one."
"He has written you before?"
"He wrote me that he loved you and was going to marry you. That was
before he learned the truth."
"About you?"
"And about you. When he wrote again, he said you had told him
everything."
So she had; more, far more than she should. What of that had he told
Monte? The question left her faint again.
"How did it happen?" he asked.
"I--I don't know," she faltered. "He guessed a little, and then I had
to tell him the rest."
Monte's mouth hardened.
"That should n't have been left for you to do. I should have told him
myself."
"Now that it's all over--can't we forget it, Monte, with all the rest?"
He bent a little toward her.
"Have you forgotten all the rest?" he demanded.
"At least, I 'm trying," she gasped.
"I wonder if you have found it as hard as I even to try?"
Steady--she must hold herself steady. His words were afire. With her
eyes on the ground, she felt his eyes searching her face.
"Whether it is hard or not makes no difference," she answered.
"It's just that which makes all the difference in the world," he
contradicted. "I wanted to be honest with myself and with you. So I
went away, willing to forget if that were the honest way. But, from
the moment I took the train here at Nice, I've done nothing but
remember. I've remembered every single minute of the time since I met
you in Paris. The present has been made up of nothing but the past.
Passing hours were nothing but echoes of past hours.
"I've remembered everything--even things away back that I thought I had
forgotten. I dug up even those glimpses I had had of you at Chic's
house when you were only a school-girl. And I did n't do it on
purpose, Marjory. I 'd have been glad not to do it, because at the
time it hurt to remember them. I thought I'd given you over to Peter.
I thought he was going to take you away from me. So I 'd have been
glad enough to forget, if it had been possible."
She sprang to her feet.
"What are you saying, Monte?" she trembled.
With his head erect and his eyes shining, he was telling her what her
heart hungered to hear. That was what he was doing. Only she must not
listen.
"I'm telling you that to forget was not possible," he repeated hotly;
"I'm telling you that I shall never try again. I've come back to get
you and keep you this time."
He held out his arms to her. She shrank back.
"You're making it so hard," she quavered.
"Come to me," he said gently. "That's the easy way. I love you,
Marjory. Don't you understand? I love you with all my heart and soul,
and I want you to begin life with me now in earnest. Come, little
woman."
He reached her hands and tried to draw her toward him. She resisted
with all her strength.
"You must n't," she gasped. "You must n't!"
"It's you who're making it hard now, wife o' mine," he whispered.
Yes, she was making it hard. But she must make it still harder. He
had come back to her because she was alone, moved temporarily by a
feeling of sentimental responsibility. That was all. He was sincere
enough for the moment, but she must not confuse this with any deeper
passion. He had made a mistake in returning to the Normandie.
Doubtless he had felt lonesome there. It was only natural that he
should exaggerate that, for the time being, into something more.
Then Peter's two letters had come. If Peter had not told him anything
that he should n't, he had probably told him a great deal more than he
should. Monte, big-hearted and good, had, as a consequence of all
these things, imagined himself in love. This delusion might last a
week or two; and then, when he came to himself again, the rude
awakening would follow. He would see her then merely as a trifler.
Worse than that, he might see himself as merely a trifler. That would
be deadly.
"It's you who are making it hard now," he repeated.
She had succeeded in freeing herself, leaving him before her as amazed
and hurt as a spurned child.
"You're forcing me to run away from you--to run away as I did from the
others," she said.
He staggered before the blow.
"Not that!" he cried hoarsely.
"I'm going home," she ran on. "I'm going back to my little farm, where
I started."
"You're running away--from me?"
"I must go right off."
She looked around as if for Marie. It was as if she were about to
start that second.
"Where is Marie?" she asked dully.
She made for the door.
"Marjory," he called after her. "Don't do that!"
"I must go--right off," she said again.
"Wife o' mine," he cried, "there is no need of that."
"Marie!" she called as she reached the door. "Marie!"
Frantically she ran up the stairs.
CHAPTER XXVII
WAR
War!
A summer sky, warm and fragrant, suddenly became dour and overcast.
Within a day thunder rolled and lightning flashed. Men glanced up in
startled surprise, then clenched their jaws. Women who were laughing
gayly turned suddenly white. Orders were speeded over the wires and
through the clouds to the remotest hamlets of France. In a few hours
men began to gather in uniform, bearing rifles. They posted themselves
about the gates of stations. They increased in numbers until they were
everywhere. Trumpets sounded, drums rolled. Excited groups gathered
in the hotels and rushed off to the consulates. The very air was tense
and vibrant.
War!
People massed in groups. The individual no longer counted.
Storekeepers, bankers, dandies, chauffeurs, postmen, gardeners, hotel
proprietors became merely Frenchmen. They dropped the clothes that
distinguished their caste, and became merely men in uniform.
Foreign visitors no longer counted as individuals. They ran about in
panic-stricken groups like vagrant dogs. Those in uniform looked on
indifferently, or gave sharp orders turning strangers back from this
road or that, this gate or that. A chauffeur in uniform might turn
back his millionaire foreign master.
Credit money no longer counted. Banks refused to give out gold, and
the shopkeepers and hotel proprietors refused to accept anything but
gold. No one knew what might happen, and refused to risk. A man might
brandish a letter of credit for ten thousand francs and be refused a
glass of wine. A man with a thousand francs in gold was in a better
position than a millionaire with only paper.
Monte discovered this when he hurried to his own bankers. With half a
million dollars and more to his credit at home, he was not allowed a
single louis d'or. Somewhat bewildered, he stood on the steps and
counted the gold he happened to have in his pockets. It amounted to
some fifty dollars. To all intents and purposes, that embraced his
entire capital. In the present emergency his stocks and bonds were of
no avail whatever to him. He thought of the cables, but gold could not
be cabled--only more credit, which in this grim crisis went for
nothing. It was as if he had suddenly been forced into bankruptcy.
His fortune temporarily had been swept away.
If that was true of his own, it must be equally true of Marjory's. She
was no wealthier now than the sum total of the gold she happened to
have in her possession. The thought came to him at first as a shock.
What was she going to do? She was upon the point of leaving, and her
plans must have been suddenly checked. She was, in effect, a prisoner
here. She was stranded as completely as if she were any penniless
young woman.
Then some emotion--some feeling indistinctly connected with the
grandfather who had crossed the plains in forty-nine--swept over him.
It was a primitive exultation. It made him conscious of the muscles in
his back and legs. It made him throw back his head and square his
shoulders. A moment before, with railroads and steamships at her
command, with a hundred men standing ready to do her bidding in
response to the magic of her check-book, she had been as much mistress
of her little world as any ancient queen.
Sweaty men were rushing fruits from the tropics, silks from India,
diamonds from Africa, caviar from the north; others were making ready
fine quarters in every corner of the globe; others were weaving cloths
and making shoes; others were rehearsing plays and music--all for her
and others like her, who had only to call upon their banks to pay for
all this toil. Instead of one man to supply her needs, she had a
thousand, ten thousand. With the machinery of civilization working
smoothly, she had only to nod--and sign a check.
Now, overnight, this had been changed. The machinery was to be put to
other uses. Ships that had been carrying silks were needed for men
with rifles. Railroads were for troops. The sweat of men was to be in
battle. Servants were to be used for the slaughter of other servants.
With nations at one another's throats, the very basis of credit, mutual
trust and esteem, was gone. She and others like her did not count.
Men with the lust for blood in their hearts could not bother with them.
They might sit in their rooms and sob, or they might starve. It did
not much matter. A check was only a bit of paper. Under such
conditions it might be good or not. Gold was what counted--gold and
men. Broad backs counted, and stout legs.
Monte took a deep breath. Now--it might be possible that he would
count. It was so that his grandfather had counted. He had fought his
way across a continent and back for just such another woman as Marjory.
Life had been primitive then. It was primitive now. Men and women
were forced to stand together and take the long road side by side.
The blood rushed to Monte's head. He must get to her at once. She
would need him now--if only for a little while. He must carry her
home. She could not go without him.
He started down the steps of the bank, two at a time, and almost ran
against her. She was on her way to the bank as he had been, in search
of gold. Her eyes greeted him with the welcome her lips would not.
"You see!" he exclaimed, with a quick laugh.
"When you need me I come."
She was dressed in the very traveling costume she had worn when they
left Paris together. She was wearing, too, the same hat. It might
have been yesterday.
"They refused my check at the hotel," she explained nervously. "They
say they must have gold."
"Have you any?" he asked.
"One louis d'or."
"And I have ten," he informed her.
She did not understand why he should be so exultant over this fact.
"I have come here to get enough to pay my bill and buy my ticket. I am
leaving this morning."
"They won't give you any," he explained. "Besides, they won't carry
you on the train unless you put on a uniform."
"Monte!"
"It's a fact."
"Then--what am I to do?"
She looked quite helpless--deliciously helpless.
He laughed joyously.
"You are bankrupt," he said. "So am I. We have only fifty-five
dollars between us. But that is something. Also there is the machine.
That will take us over the Italian frontier and to Genoa. I ought to
be able to sell it there for something. Come on."
"Where?" she asked.
"We must get the car as soon as possible. I have a notion that with
every passing hour it is going to be more difficult to get out."
"But I'm not going with you, Monte. It's--it's impossible!"
"It's the only way, little woman."
He gave her no time to argue about it, but took her arm and hurried her
to the garage. It was necessary to walk. Taxis were as if they had
never been. They passed groups of soldiers who turned to look at
Marjory. The eyes of many were hot with wine, and she was very glad
that she was not alone.
At the door of the garage stood a soldier in uniform. As Monte
attempted to pass, he was brought to a halt.
"It is not permitted to pass," explained the guard.
"But I want to get my car."
"I 'm afraid monsieur has no car."
"Eh?"
"They have all been taken for la patrie."
"You mean my machine has been confiscated?"
"Borrowed, perhaps. After the victory--" The guard shrugged his
shoulders.
Monte shrugged his own shoulders. Then he laughed.
"After all," he said, "that is little enough to do for France. Inform
the authorities they are welcome."
He saluted the guard, who returned the salute. Again he took Marjory's
arm, and turned toward the hotel.
"There is nothing to do but to walk," he declared.
"Where?"
She could not understand his mood. It was as if this were a holiday
instead of a very serious plight.
"Over the border. It is only some twenty-five miles. We can do it
easily in two days; but even if it takes three--"
Even if it took a hundred, what did it matter, with her by his side?
And by his side she must remain until her credit was restored. With
only one louis d'or in her pocket, she was merely a woman, with all the
limitations of her sex. She could not take to the open road alone.
She did not have the physical strength that dictated the law for
vagabonds. She must have a man near to fight for her, or it would go
hard. Even Marie would be no protection in time of war.
Dumbly she followed his pace until they reached the hotel. The place
was in confusion and the proprietor at his wits' end. In the midst of
it, Monte was the only one apparently unmoved.
"Pack one small hand-bag," he ordered. "You must leave your trunks
here."
"Yes, Monte," she submitted.
"I'll run back to the Roses, and meet you here in a half-hour. Will
you be ready?"
"Yes. Marie will come with us, of course."
He shook his head.
"She must wait here until she can get to Paris. Find out if she has
any cash."
"I want her to come with me," she pleaded.
"I doubt if she will want to come. Anyway, our fifty-five dollars
won't stretch to her. We--we can't afford a maid."
She flushed at his use of "we." Nevertheless, what he said was true
enough. That sum was a mere pittance. Fate had her in a tight grip.
"Be sure to bring your passport," he reminded her. "It is ten-thirty.
I 'll be here at eleven."
Hurrying back to his room, he took what he could crowd into his
pockets: his safety razor and toothbrush, a few handkerchiefs and a
change of socks. One did not need much on the open road. He carried
his sweater--the old crimson sweater with the black "H"--more for her
than for himself. The rest of his things he threw into his trunk and
left in the care of the hotel.
She was waiting for him when he returned to the Hotel d'Angleterre.
"You were right about Marie," she acknowledged. "She has two brothers
in the army. She has money enough for her fare to Paris, and is going
as soon as possible."
"In the meanwhile she is safe enough here. So, en avant!"
He took her bag, and they stepped out into the sunshine.
CHAPTER XXVIII
THE CORNICE ROAD
It was the Cornice Road that he followed--the broad white road that
skirts the sea at the foot of the Alpes Maritimes. As far as Monte
Carlo, he had walked it alone many the time. But he had never walked
it with her, so it was a new road. It was a new world too, and as far
as he was concerned there was no war. The blue sky overhead gave no
hint of war; neither did the Mediterranean; neither did the trees full
of singing birds; neither did the grasses and flowers: and these
things, with the woman at his side, comprised, for the moment, his
whole world. It was the world as originally created for man and woman.
All that he was leaving behind--banks and hotels and taxis and servants
and railroads--had nothing to do with the primal idea of creation.
They were all extraneous. The heavens, the earth, the waters beneath
the earth, man and woman created He them. That was all. That was
enough.
Once or twice, alone in his camp in the Adirondacks, Monte had sensed
this fact. With a bit of food to eat, a bit of tobacco to smoke in his
old brier, a bit of ground to lie down upon at night, he had marveled
that men found so many other things necessary to their comfort. But,
after a week or two of that, he had always grown restless, and hurried
back to New York and his club and his men servants. In turn he grew
restless there, and hurried on to the still finer luxuries of the
German liners and the Continent.
That was because he was lonesome--because she had not been with him.
It was because--how clearly he saw it now!--he had never been complete
by himself alone. He had been satisfying only half of himself. The
other half he had tried to quiet with man-made things, with the
artificial products of civilization. He had thought to allay that
deep, undefined hunger in him with travel and sports and the attentions
of hirelings. It had been easy at first; but, keen as nimble wits had
been to keep pace with his desires with an ever-increasing variety of
luxuries, he had exhausted them all within a decade and been left
unsatisfied.
To-day it was as if with each intake of breath the sweet air reached
for the first time the most remote corners of his lungs. He had never
before had air enough. The sunshine reached to the marrow of his
bones. Muscles that had lagged became vibrant. He could hardly keep
his feet upon the ground. He would have liked to run; to keep on
running mile after mile. He wondered when he would tire. He had a
feeling that he could never tire. His back and arm muscles ached for
action. He would have enjoyed a rough-and-tumble fight with some
impudent fellow vagabond of the road.
Marjory walked by his side in silence. That was all he asked--simply
that she should be there on the left, dependent upon him. Here was the
nub of the matter. Always before she had been able to leave him if she
wished. She had married him upon that condition. There had never been
a moment, until now, when he had not been conscious of the fact that he
was in no way necessary to her. The protection against Teddy and the
others was merely a convenience. He had been able to save her from
annoyance, that was all. At any time on that ride from Paris she could
have left him and gone on her way quite safely. At Nice, that was just
what she had done. It was to save her from the annoyance of himself
that he had finally gone away. Had he been really needed, that would
have been impossible. But he knew that she could get along without him
as she did. Then when Peter had gone it was more because he needed her
than because she needed him that he had returned. Down deep in his
heart he knew that, whatever he may have pretended. She was safe
enough from everything except possible annoyance. With plenty of gold
at her command, there was nothing that he could buy for her that she
could not buy for herself.
Now she had no gold--except one louis d'or. He was almost jealous of
that single piece. He would have been glad if she lost it. If he had
seen it drop from her bag, he would have let it lie where it fell.
She was merely a woman now. The muscles in her arms and legs were not
strong. Because of that she could not leave his side, nor order him to
leave. She must look to him to fight for her if fighting were
necessary. She must look to him to put his strong arm about her and
help her if she grew weary. She must look to him to provide her with
food and shelter for the night. Physically she was like a child out
here on the open road. But he was a man.
He was a man because he had something to protect. He was a man because
he was responsible for some one besides himself. It was this that the
other half of him had been craving all these years. It was this that
completed him.
Yet his attitude toward her, in this respect, was strangely impersonal.
He was looking for no reward. He did not consider that he was placing
her in any way under an obligation to him. His joy in doing for her
was not based upon any idea of furthering his own interests. He was
utterly unselfish. He did not look ahead an hour. It was enough to
have her here in a position where he could be of some service.
His love for her was another matter entirely. Whether she were with
him or not, that would have remained the same. He loved her with all
there was in him, and that was more or less distinct from any attitude
that she might assume. It was a separate, definite, concrete fact, no
longer open to argument--no longer to be affected by any of the petty
accidents of circumstance. Not even she had now any control over it.
It was within her power to satisfy it or not; but that was all. She
could not destroy it. If she left it unfulfilled, then he must endure
that, as Peter had. Peter was not sorry that he loved her, and
Peter--why, Peter did not have the opportunity to sense more than the
first faint beginnings of the word love. Peter had not had those weeks
in Paris in which to get to know her; he had not had that wonderful
ride through sunny France with Marjory by his side; and Peter had had
nothing approaching such a day as this.
Monte turned to look at her. They had passed through Villefranche, and
were now taking the up grade. The exercise had flushed her cheeks,
giving her back the color she had lacked in the last few weeks. Her
eyes were upon the ground, as if she did not dare raise them. Her face
always seemed younger when one did not see the eyes. Asleep, she could
not have looked over twenty. He marveled at how delicately feminine
her forehead and nose were. And the lips--he could not look very long
at her lips. Warm and full of curves, they tugged at his heart. They
roused desire. Yet, had it been his blessed privilege to touch them
with his own, he would have been very gentle about it. A man must
needs always be gentle with her, he thought.
That was why he must not utter the phrases that burned within. It
would only frighten her, and he must see that she was never frightened
again. To himself he might say as much as he pleased, because she
could not hear. He could repeat to himself over and over again, as he
did now, "I love you--I love you--I love you."
Out loud, however, he said only:--
"Are you tired?"
She started even at that.
"No, Monte," she answered.
"We can rest any time you wish. We have all the time in the world
ahead of us."
"Have we?"
"Days and weeks and months," he replied.
It was the old Monte she heard--the easy, care-free Monte. It made her
feel easier.
"We should cross the border by to-morrow night, should n't we?" she
asked.
"We could, if it were necessary," he admitted.
She quickened her pace unconsciously.
"I think we should get there as soon as possible."
"That," he said, "would be like hurrying through Eden."
She ventured to glance up at him. With his lean, strong face to the
sun, his lithe body swinging rhythmically to his stride, he looked like
an Indian chieftain. So he would have stalked through virgin forests.
So, under different conditions, she might have been following his lead.
But conditions were as they were. That is what she must keep in mind.
He was here merely to escort her safely to Italy and to the steamer in
which she was soon to sail for home. He was being decent to her, as
under the same conditions he would be to any woman. He could scarcely
do less than he was doing. She was forced upon him.
That he apparently took pleasure in the episode was natural enough. It
was just the sort of experience he enjoyed. It was another pleasant
excursion like the motor trip from Paris, with a touch of adventure
added to give it spice. Possibly in his present mood there was also a
trace of romance. Monte had his romantic side, based upon his quick
sympathies. A maiden in distress was enough to rouse this. That was
what happened yesterday when he told her of his love. He had been
sincere enough for the moment, and no doubt believed everything he
said. He had not given himself quite time enough to get back to his
schedule. With that in good running order he would laugh at his
present folly.
For she must remember that Monte had not as yet touched either the
heights or the depths of love. It was in him to do that, but she must
see to it that he did not. That was her task. Love as he saw it now
was merely a pleasant garden, in May. It was a gypsy jaunt along the
open road where it was pleasant enough to have her with him as he
whistled along. A day or a week or a month or two of that was well
enough, as he had said. Only she--she could not last that long.
To-day and to-morrow at the utmost was as much as she could endure,
with every minute a struggle to whip back her emotions. Were it safe,
she would try to keep it up for his sake. If without danger she could
keep him happy this way, not allowing him to go any further, she would
try. But there is a limit to what of herself a woman may sacrifice,
even if she is willing.
So, with her lips set, she stumbled along the Cornice Road by his side.
At five that evening they had made half their journey and stopped at a
wayside inn--the inn of L'Agneau dansant. On a squeaking sign before
the ancient stone structure, which looked as if it must have been there
in the days of post-chaises, a frolicsome lamb danced upon his hind
legs, smiling to all who paused there an invitation to join him in this
innocent pastime and not take the world too seriously. The good humor
of the crude painting appealed to Monte. He grinned back at L'Agneau
dansant.
"I'm with you," he nodded.
Marjory, dusty and footsore, followed his gaze.
Then she too smiled.
"That fellow has the proper spirit," he declared. "Shall we place
ourselves in his care?"
"I'm afraid I can't go any farther," she answered wearily.
Monsieur Soucin came out, looking to be in anything but the mood of the
gay lamb before his door.
"Two rooms, a little supper, and some breakfast," explained Monte.
"But we must strike a bargain. We are not American tourists--merely
two travelers of the road without much gold and a long way to go."
"I have but a single louis d'or," put in madame.
"Monsieur! Madame!" interrupted Soucin. "I am sorry, but I cannot
accommodate you at any price. In the next village a regiment of
soldiers have arrived. I have had word that I must receive here ten
officers. They come at seven to-night."
"But look here--madame is very tired," frowned Monte.
"I am sorry," answered Soucin helplessly.
Monte stepped nearer and jingled the gold in his pocket.
"Doubtless the next village in that case is without accommodations
also," said Monte. "We will strike no bargain. Name your price up to
ten louis d'or; for madame must rest."
Soucin shook his head.
"I am giving up my own room. I must sleep in the kitchen--if I sleep
at all; which, mon Dieu, is doubtful."
"Supposing we had arrived yesterday, would you have turned us out
to-night?"
"The inquiry was made how many rooms I had, and I answered truthfully."
Madame had sunk down on a bench by the door. Monte stared up the road
and down the road. There was no other house in sight.
"You could not find a bed for madame even for ten louis d'or?"
"Not for a thousand, monsieur. If there are no beds, there are no
beds."
Yet there was room enough thereabouts. Behind the inn an olive orchard
extended up a gentle incline to a stone wall. Over this the sun was
descending in a blaze of glory. A warm breeze stirred the dark leaves
of the trees. A man could sleep out of doors on such a night as this.
Monte turned again to the man.
"The orchard behind the house is yours?" he asked.
"Yes, monsieur."
"Then," said Monte, "if you will spare us a few blankets, madame and I
will sleep there."
"Upon the ground?"
"Upon the blankets," smiled Monte.
"Ah, monsieur is from America!" exclaimed Soucin, as if that explained
everything.
"Truly."
"And it is so the Indians sleep, I have read."
"You have read well. But we must have supper before the officers
arrive. You can spare some bread and cheese?"
"I will do that."
"Then make it ready at once. And some coffee?"
"Yes, monsieur."
Monte returned to madame.
"I have engaged two rooms in the olive orchard," he announced.
CHAPTER XXIX
BENEATH THE STARS
The situation was absurd, but what could be done about it? France was
at war, and there would be many who would sleep upon the ground who had
never slept there before. Many, too, in the ground. Still, the
situation was absurd--that Marjory, with all her thousands of dollars,
should be forced to sleep out of doors. It gave her a startling sense
of helplessness. She had been before in crowded places, but the
securing of accommodations was merely a matter of increasing the size
of her check. But here, even if one had a thousand louis d'or, that
would have made no difference. Officers of the Army of France were not
to be disturbed by the tinkle of gold. With a single gold-piece,
moreover, one could not even make a tinkle.
She went into the inn to tidy herself before supper; but she hurried
back to Monte as quickly as possible. Out of sight of him she felt as
lost as a child in a forest. She had nothing to lean upon now but him.
Without him here she would scarcely have had even identity. Her name,
except as signed to a check, meant nothing. To have announced herself
as Miss Marjory Stockton, or even as Madame Covington, would have left
the soldiers of France merely smiling. To her sex they might have paid
some deference, but to her sex alone. She was not anything except as
she was attached to Monte--as a woman under the protection of her man.
This did not humble her. Her first clean, unguarded emotion was one of
pride. Had it been her privilege to let herself go, she would have
taken her place near him with her eyes afire--with her head held as
proudly as any queen. Gladly would she have rested by his side in an
olive orchard or a fisherman's hut or a forest or on the plains or
anywhere fortune might take him. By his side--that would have been
enough. If she were his woman and he her man, that would have been
enough.
If she could only let herself go! As she came into the smoky old
tavern room and he stepped forward to meet her, she swayed a little.
He looked so big and wholesome and eager with his arms outstretched!
They were alone here. It would have been so easy just to close her
eyes and let her head rest against his shoulder--so easy and restful.
He would have kissed her hair, and the ache would all have gone from
her body and heart. He would draw her close and hold her tight--yes,
for a day or two or a month or two. Then he would remember that week
in which she had trifled with him, and he would hate her.
She pulled herself together.
"Is supper ready?"
It was such an inane remark! He turned aside like a boy who has been
snubbed.
Monsieur Soucin had provided bread and cheese, a salad, and coffee. It
was enough. She had no appetite. She took much more satisfaction in
watching Monte and in pouring his coffee. His honest hunger was not
disturbed by any vain speculations. He ate like a man, as he did
everything like a man. It restored her confidence again.
"Soucin lent a mattress, which I have arranged just the other side of
the wall. That is your room. With plenty of blankets you should be
comfortable enough there," he said.
"And you?" she inquired.
"I am on this side of the wall," he replied gravely.
"What are you going to sleep upon?"
"A blanket."
If it had been possible to do so, she would have given him the mattress
and slept upon the ground herself. That is what she would have liked
to do.
"It's no more than I have done in the woods when I could n't make camp
in time," he explained. "I had hoped to take you some day to my cabin
near the lake."
She could think of nothing better than another inane remark:--
"It must be beautiful there."
He looked up.
"It always has been, but now--without you--"
"You must n't let me make any difference," she put in quickly.
"Why not?"
"Because you must n't. You must go on just as if you had never met me."
"Why?" He was as direct as a boy.
"Because that's best. Oh, I know, Monte. You must trust me to know
what is good for you," she cried.
"I don't believe you know even what is good for yourself," he answered.
"I--I know what is right," she faltered.
He saw that he was disturbing her, and he did not want to do that.
"Perhaps in time we'll see," he said. "I have a notion that some day
you and I will get straightened out."
"It does n't make so much difference about me; but you--you must get
back to your schedule again as soon as ever you can."
"Perhaps to a new one; but that must include you."
She could not help the color in her cheeks. It was beyond her control.
"I must make my own little schedule," she insisted.
"You are going back to the farm?"
She nodded.
"To-morrow we shall be in Italy. Then a train to Genoa and the next
boat," she said.
"After that?"
"In a week or so I shall be back where I started."
"Then?"
She laughed nervously.
"I can't think much ahead of that. Perhaps I shall raise chickens."
"Year after year?"
"Maybe."
"If you lived to be seventy you'd have a lot of chickens by then, would
n't you?"
"I--I don't know."
It did sound ridiculous, the way he put it.
"Then--would you will them to some one?" he asked.
He was laughing at her. She was glad to have him do that rather than
remain serious.
"Please don't make me look ahead to seventy," she shuddered.
Monsieur Soucin was hovering about nervously. He wished to have
everything cleared away before the officers arrived, and they would be
here now in half an hour. He was solicitous about madame.
"It is a great pity that madame should sleep out of doors," he said.
"It makes my heart ache. But, with monsieur to guard her, at least
madame will be safe."
Yes, safe from every one but herself. However, Monsieur Soucin could
not be expected to read a lady's innermost thoughts. Indeed, it would
scarcely have been gallant so to do.
"And now you wish to be rid of us," said Monte as he rose.
"Monsieur should not be unkind," sighed Soucin. "It is a necessity and
not a wish."
"You have done as well as you could," Monte reassured him. "We shall
probably rise early and be on our way before the soldiers, so--"
Monte slipped into his hand a gold-piece. It was too much from one
point of view, and yet from another it was little enough. Soucin had
unwittingly made an arrangement for which Monte could not pay in money.
"And my share?" inquired Marjory.
"One louis d'or," answered Monte unblushingly.
She fumbled in her bag and brought it out--the last she had. And
Monte, in his reckless joy, handed that over also to Soucin. The man
was too bewildered to do more than bow as he might before a prince and
princess.
Monte led her up the incline through the heavy-leaved olive trees to
her couch against the wall. It had been made up as neatly as in any
hotel, with plenty of blankets and a pillow for her head.
"If you wish to retire at once," he said, "I'll go back to my side of
the wall."
She hesitated. The wall was man-high and so thick that once he was
behind it she would feel terribly alone.
"Or better still," he suggested, "you lie down and let me sit and smoke
here. I 'll be quiet."
It was a temptation she would have resisted had she not been so tired
physically. As it was, half numbed with fatigue, she removed her hat
and lay down between the blankets.
Monte slipped on his sweater with the black "H" and took a place
against the wall at Marjory's feet.
"All comfy?" he asked.
"It's impossible to feel altogether comfortable when you're selfish,"
Marjory declared.
He took a thoughtful puff of his cigarette.
"I think you're right about that," he answered. "Only in this case
there's no reason in the world for you to feel like that, because I'm
comfortable too."
"Honestly?"
"Cross my heart. I'd rather be here than in the finest bed in Paris."
"You're so good," she murmured.
With all her muscles relaxed, and with him there, she felt as if she
were floating in the clouds.
"It's strange you've always had that notion, because I 'm not
especially good," he replied. "Do you want to go to sleep, or may I
talk a while longer?"
"Please to talk."
"Of course," he ran on meditatively, "something depends upon what you
mean by being good. I used to think it was merely being decent. I've
been that. It happened to be easy. But being good, as I see it now,
is being good when it isn't easy--and then something more."
She was listening with bated breath, because he was voicing her own
thoughts.
"It's being good to others besides yourself," he continued.
"Forgetting yourself for them--when that is n't easy."
"Yes, it's that," she said.
"I don't want to boast," he said; "but, in a way, I come nearer being
good at this moment, than ever before in my life."
"You mean because it's tiresome for you to sit there?"
"Because it's hard for me to sit here when I'd like to be kneeling by
your side, kissing your hand, your forehead, your lips," he answered
passionately.
She started to her elbow.
"I shan't move," he assured her. "But it is n't easy to sit here like
a bump on a log with everything you're starving for within arm's reach."
"Monte!" she gasped. "Perhaps you'd better not talk."
"If it were only as easy to stop thinking!"
"Why don't one's thoughts mind?" she cried. "When they are told what's
right, why don't they come right?"
"God knows," he answered. "I sit here and tell myself that if you
don't love me I should let it go at that, and think the way I did
before the solemn little pastor in Paris got so serious over what
wasn't meant to be serious. I've tried, little woman. I tried hard
when I left you with Peter. I could n't do it then, and I can't do it
now. I hear over and over again the words the little minister spoke,
and they grow more wonderful and fine every day. I think he must have
known then that I loved you or he would not have uttered them."
The leaves in the olive trees rustled beneath the stars.
"Dear wife," he cried, "when are you coming to me?"
He did not move. She saw his broad shoulders against the wall. She
saw his arms folded over his chest as if to keep them tight. She saw
his clenched lips.
"God help me to keep silent," she prayed.
"When are you coming?" he repeated wearily. "Will it be one year or
two years or three years?"
She moistened her lips. He seemed to speak as though it were only a
matter of time--as though it were he who was being punished and it was
only a question of how long. She sank back with her eyes upon the
stars darting shafts of white light through the purple.
"And what am I going to do while I'm waiting?" he went on, as though to
himself.
Grimly she forced out the words:--
"You--you must n't wait. There 's nothing to wait for."
She saw his arms tighten; saw his lips grow hard.
"Nothing?" he exclaimed. "Don't make me believe that, because--then
there would n't be anything."
She grew suddenly afraid.
"There would be everything else in the world for you--everything except
me," she trembled. "And I count for so little. That's what I want you
to learn. That's what, in a little while, you will learn. That's what
you must learn. If you'll only hold on until to-morrow--until the next
day and I'm gone--"
"Gone?"
He sprang to his feet.
"Monte!" she warned.
In terror she struggled to her own feet. The white light of the stars
bathed their faces. In the distance he heard the notes of a trumpet
sounding taps. It roused him further. It was as though the night were
closing in upon him--as though life were closing in on him.
He turned and seized her.
"Marjory!" he cried. "Look me in the eyes."
She obeyed.
"They are sounding taps over there," he panted. "Before they are
through--do you love me, Marjory?"
Never before in all his life had he asked her that directly. Always
she had been able to avoid the direct answer. Now--
She tried to struggle free.
"Don't--don't ask me that!" she pleaded.
"Before they are through--do you love me?"
Piercing the still night air the final notes came to her. There was no
escape. Either she must lie or tell the truth and to lie--that meant
death.
"Quick!" he cried.
"I do!" she whispered.
"Then--"
He tried to draw her to him.
"You made me tell you, Monte," she sobbed. "Oh, you made me tell the
truth."
"The truth," he nodded with a smile; "that was all that was necessary.
It's all that is ever necessary."
He had released her. She was crowding against the wall. She looked up
at him.
"Now," he said, "if it's one year or two years or three years--what's
the difference?"
Her eyes suddenly grew as brilliant as the stars. She straightened
herself.
"Then," she trembled, "if it's like that--"
"It might as well be now," he pleaded.
Unsteadily, like one walking in a dream, she tottered toward him. He
caught her in his arms and kissed her lips--there in the starlight,
there in the olive orchard, there in the Garden of Eden.
THE END
End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of The Triflers, by Frederick Orin Bartlett
*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE TRIFLERS ***
***** This file should be named 20458.txt or 20458.zip *****
This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
http://www.gutenberg.org/2/0/4/5/20458/
Produced by Al Haines
Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions
will be renamed.
Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no
one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation
(and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without
permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules,
set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to
copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to
protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project
Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you
charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you
do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the
rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose
such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and
research. They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do
practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is
subject to the trademark license, especially commercial
redistribution.
*** START: FULL LICENSE ***
THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project
Gutenberg-tm License (available with this file or online at
http://gutenberg.org/license).
Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm
electronic works
1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy
all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession.
If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project
Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the
terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or
entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement
and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
works. See paragraph 1.E below.
1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the Foundation"
or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project
Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the
collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an
individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are
located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from
copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative
works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg
are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project
Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by
freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of
this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with
the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by
keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project
Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others.
1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in
a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check
the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement
before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or
creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project
Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning
the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United
States.
1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate
access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently
whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the
phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the phrase "Project
Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed,
copied or distributed:
This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived
from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is
posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied
and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees
or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work
with the phrase "Project Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the
work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1
through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the
Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or
1.E.9.
1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional
terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked
to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the
permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work.
1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
Gutenberg-tm License.
1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or
distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than
"Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official version
posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.org),
you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a
copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon
request, of the work in its original "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other
form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm
License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided
that
- You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is
owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he
has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the
Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments
must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you
prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax
returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and
sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the
address specified in Section 4, "Information about donations to
the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation."
- You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
License. You must require such a user to return or
destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium
and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of
Project Gutenberg-tm works.
- You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any
money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days
of receipt of the work.
- You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm
electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set
forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from
both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael
Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the
Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
1.F.
1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm
collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain
"Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or
corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual
property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a
computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by
your equipment.
1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH F3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
DAMAGE.
1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with
your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with
the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a
refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity
providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to
receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy
is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further
opportunities to fix the problem.
1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS' WITH NO OTHER
WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO
WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTIBILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages.
If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the
law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be
interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by
the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any
provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions.
1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance
with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works,
harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees,
that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do
or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm
work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any
Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause.
Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers
including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists
because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from
people in all walks of life.
Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
assistance they need, is critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations.
To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4
and the Foundation web page at http://www.pglaf.org.
Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
Foundation
The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
number is 64-6221541. Its 501(c)(3) letter is posted at
http://pglaf.org/fundraising. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg
Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent
permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S.
Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered
throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at
809 North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887, email
business@pglaf.org. Email contact links and up to date contact
information can be found at the Foundation's web site and official
page at http://pglaf.org
For additional contact information:
Dr. Gregory B. Newby
Chief Executive and Director
gbnewby@pglaf.org
Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
Literary Archive Foundation
Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
status with the IRS.
The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To
SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any
particular state visit http://pglaf.org
While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
approach us with offers to donate.
International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations.
To donate, please visit: http://pglaf.org/donate
Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
works.
Professor Michael S. Hart is the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm
concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared
with anyone. For thirty years, he produced and distributed Project
Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.
Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S.
unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily
keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition.
Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:
http://www.gutenberg.org
This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
|